Dyuthi T1806
Dyuthi T1806
Dyuthi T1806
By
S. Anuja
August 2013
Dedicated to -
Late Capt. M.V.R. Varier (my grandfather),
Professor T. Devidas (my mentor),
Professor T.V.Subba Rao (my friend, philosopher and
guide),
P. Vijayalakshmi (my mother),
P.V. Sreedharan (my father) and
Bharath (my son)
School of Legal Studies
Cochin University of Science and Technology
Kochi 682 022, Kerala, India
Kochi-22 S. Anuja
12th August 2013
I take this opportunity to acknowledge the guidance of
my supervising teacher, Professor D. Rajeev, Former
Director, School of Legal Studies, Cochin University of
Science and Technology. I record my deep felt gratitude
towards him for the pains he has taken to read and correct
the draft of my thesis.
Anuja S.
PREFACE
i
Inter-American Commission of Human Rights in bringing out the states
accountability in cases related to domestic violence.
A comparative study of western jurisdictions i.e., U.S.A and U.K is
undertaken in the fourth chapter. It discusses the legislations and multi-agency
responses in USA and UK, in addressing the legal strategies resorted to by
them in dealing with the issue.
A critical analysis of the pre-2005scenario relating to the legal
protection offered against domestic violence in India is the topic covered under
the fifth chapter. The mandates of the Constitution of India, civil and criminal
law remedies, statuary offences relating to domestic violence etc., are discussed
in this chapter to understand the limitations and inadequacies felt in the system.
ii
Contents
Chapter 1
1Introduction ..............................................
.................................
1.1General Understandings of Violence and 3
Domestic Violence .................
1. Specific Understanding of Domestic 7
2 Violence .......................................
1. Understandings as to Causes of Domestic
3 Violence and Some
Explanatory 8
Models .................................................................
............
1. Causes of Domestic Violence in the Indian 1
4 Context ............................. 2
1. Indian and Western Concepts on Familial 1
5 Relationships ...................... 6
1. Objectives of the 2
6 Study ................................................................... 0
.......
1. Hypotheses ........................................................... 2
7 ................................... 0
1. Research 2
8 Questions ............................................................. 1
....................
1. Methodology ......................................................... 2
9 .................................. 2
1.10 Scope and Limitation of the 2
Study ....................................................... 2
Chapter 2 Historical Perceptions on the
Concept of Domestic
Violence against Women-Indian
and Western
Overview ......................................... 2
................................... 4
2. Gender inequality-Philosophical Underpinnings
1 on Roles, Rights
and Domestic 2
Violence .............................................................. 7
...........
2.1 The Greek 2
.1 Philosophy............................................................. 8
................
2.1 The Natural Law 3
.2 Thinking ............................................................... 1
....
2.1 The Social Contract 3
.3 Thinking ............................................................... 1
.
2.1 The Enlightenment 3
.4 Thinking ............................................................... 3
..
2.1 The Utilitarian 3
.5 Thinking ............................................................... 3
........
2.1 The Marxist 3
.6 Thinking ............................................................... 4
.............
2.1 The Teachings of 3
.7 Christianity .......................................................... 5
......
2.1 The Common Law 3
.8 Thinking................................................................ 6
...
2.1 The Feminist 3
.9 Theories ............................................................... 8
.............
2. Ideological Perceptions on Women in Domestic
2 Relations-The
Indian 4
Scenario .............................................................. 2
......................
2.2 The Hindu Texts on Womans 4
.1 Dharma ................................................. 3
2.2 The Christian Teachings and its 4
.2 Reflections .......................................... 9
2.2 The teachings of 5
.3 Quran .................................................................. 0
.......
Conclusion ................................................................ 5
.................................... 3
iii
Chapter 3 The Nature of Domestic Violence A
Human Rights
Discourse...........................................................................................55
3.1 International Human Rights Responses to Domestic
Violence in the
Context of Sex Equality and Sex Discrimination.. 62
3.2 Exploring the Internationalizing Elements of Domestic
Violence........................................................................................................63
3.3 International Concern and Standards on Family and
Domestic
Violence...............................................................................................67
3.4 Domestic Violence in International Law - Historical
Overview and
Status Quo.........................................................................................71
3.4.1. 1946: Commission on the Status of Women......72
3.4.2. 1975: First World Conference on Women in Mexico
City, Mexico.........................................................................................73
3.4.3. 1979: Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of
Discrimination against Women.....................................73
3.4.4. 1985: UN Resolution.........................................................75
3.4.5. 1990: UN Resolution.........................................................77
3.4.6. 1992: General Recommendation Number 19....77
3.4.7. 1980: Second World Conference on Women,
Copenhagen........................................................................................79
3.4.8. 1985: Third World Conference on Women, Nairobi 79
3.4.9. 1993: World Conference on Human Rights, Vienna 80
3.4.10. 1993: The Declaration on the Elimination of Violence
against
Women.......................................................................................81
3.4.11. 1995: Beijing Declaration and Platform for Action 82
3.4.12. 2000: The CEDAW Optional Protocol....................84
3.4.13. 2000: UN General Comment No.28......................89
3.4.14. 2004: General Assembly Resolution on the
Elimination of
Domestic Violence against Women............................91
3.4.15. 1994-2009: Reports of the Special Rapporteur on
Violence
against Women, Its Causes and Consequences. 92
3.5 Regional Legal and Policy Instruments and
Jurisprudence
Relating to Domestic Violence............................................95
3.6 Analyses of Landmark Decisions on Domestic Violence
in Courts
Around the World..........................................................................98
3.7 Indias Obligations under International Human Rights
Treaties.........................................................................................................109
Conclusion 113
iv
Chapter 4 Domestic Violence Legislation and
Its Implementation in
USA and 1
UK .............................................................. 1
............. 5
4. The USA 11
1 Experience ............................................................ 6
..................
4. The UK 14
2 Experience ............................................................ 0
....................
Conclusion ................................................................ 15
.................................... 4
Chapter 5 Legal Protection against Domestic
Violence in India
Pre-2005 1
Scenario ...................................................... 5
............. 6
5. Constitutional 15
1 Framework ............................................................ 6
.........
5. Civil Law Responses on Domestic 16
2 Violence ........................................... 1
5.2. Domestic violence under the Law of 16
1 Torts ............................................ 1
5.2. Domestic Violence under the Family Courts Act, 16
2 1984 ......................... 2
5. Cruelty as a Matrimonial 16
3 Offence ......................................................... 3
5. Judicial Approach on Matrimonial 16
4 Cruelty ............................................ 5
5. The General Criminal Law Responses on 17
5 Domestic Violence ................. 6
5.5. Hurt and Grievous 17
1 Hurt ...................................................................... 7
..
5.5. Criminal Breach of 17
2 Trust...................................................................... 8
..
5.5. Wrongful Restraint and Wrongful 17
3 Confinement .................................. 9
5.5. Outraging the Modesty of a 17
4 Woman ..................................................... 9
5.5. Insulting the modesty of a 17
5 woman ........................................................ 9
5.5. Causing Miscarriage and Other 18
6 Offences .............................................. 0
5.5. Bigamy ................................................................. 18
7 .................................. 1
5.5. Adultery ............................................................... 18
8 .................................. 1
5.5. Defamation .......................................................... 18
9 .................................. 3
5.5.10 18
Death .......................................................................... 3
.........................
5.5.11 18
Rape ........................................................................... 4
..........................
5.5.12 Marital 18
Rape ........................................................................... 5
.............
5.6 Specific Criminal Law Responses in the Context
of Domestic
Violence. .................................................................. 18
.................................... 6
5.6. Implication of dowry death as a form of 18
1 domestic violence. ............... 7
5.6. Implication of Abetment of Suicide in Domestic 19
2 Violence .................... 0
5.6. Cruelty by Husband or his Relatives for
3 Dowry as a Form of
Domestic 19
Violence .............................................................. 2
.................
5. Specific Legislations in the Context of Domestic 19
7 Violence ................... 7
v
5.7. The Child Marriage Restraint Act, 19
1 1929 ............................................... 7
5.7. The Dowry Prohibition Act, 19
2 1961 ......................................................... 8
5.7. The Commission of Sati Prevention Act, 20
3 1987 ...................................... 1
5.7. The Pre-conception and Pre-natal
4 Diagnostic Techniques
(Prohibition of Sex Selection) Act, 20
1994 ............................................. 2
5.7. Maintenance 20
5 Laws ..................................................................... 3
...........
5.7. Laws Relating to Custody of 20
6 Children .................................................. 4
5. Domestic Violence The National Policy 20
8 Scenario ................................ 4
5. Limitations of the Pre - 2005 Legal 20
9 Regime .......................................... 6
Chapter 6 The Protection of Women from
Domestic Violence Act,
2005 An 2
Appraisal............................................ 1
.................... 0
6.1 The Evolution of Protection of Women from
Domestic Violence
Act, 21
2005 .................................................................... 1
..........................
6.2 The Constitutional Basis of the 21
Act ....................................................... 4
6.3 Aims and Objects of the 21
Act ................................................................... 8
6.4 The Act: An Analysis of its Provisions and its 22
Implications ................. 0
6.4 The Scope of Domestic Violence 22
.1 Expanded ........................................... 1
6.4 The Concept of Domestic 22
.2 Relationship .................................................. 2
6.4 The Concept of Shared 22
.3 Household ......................................................... 5
6.4 The Concept of Domestic Violence 22
.5 Widened ....................................... 7
6.4 The Novel Machinery for Implementation: Role
.6 of Protection
Officers and Service 23
Providers............................................................. 4
6.4 The Reliefs provided Under the Act: Protection
.7 Orders,
Residence Orders, Monetary Reliefs,
Custody Orders, and
Compensation 24
Orders ................................................................. 5
..........
6.4 The procedures of Implementation: A Mix
.8 of Civil Remedies
and Criminal 25
Procedure ............................................................ 3
...........
6.4 The Consequences of Breaching the Judicial 25
.9 Orders ............................. 9
6.5 Analyising the Merits of the 26
Act ............................................................ 0
6.6 The Act- A Critical 26
Analysis ................................................................ 7
..
6.7 Indian Experience juxtaposed with the U.S.A and
U.K
Experiences.......................................................... 27
................................. 6
Chapter 7 Judicial Decisions on the
Protection of Women from
Domestic Violence Act, 2005A Critique 2
................................ 8
2
7.1 Challenges to the Constitutionality of the 28
Act ....................................... 3
vi
7.2 Recognition of Rights of Women in Relationships in the
Nature of
Marriage...............................................................................................287
7.3 Right to Matrimonial Residence and Property.......299
7.4 Whether a Woman can be a Respondent Under the Act.
............................................................................................................................ 316
vii
Introduction
Chapter 1
INTRODUCTION
FGHIJK
MNOPQR
58WXYZ[\
_`abc
gh ij
f
no
m The U.N. Declaration on the Elimination of Violence
against Women 1993, Art.1.
Rights of Women against Domestic Violence-The Law and Emerging
Challenges 1
Introduction
through it, societies perpetuate themselves both culturally and biologically. The
family, therefore, is a socially recognized unit of people related to each other
by kinship, marital, and legal ties. The World Population Plan of Action which
emerged from the World population Conference 1994 recommended that a)
family to be protected by appropriate legislation, b) family ties to strengthened
by giving recognition to the importance of love and mutual respect within the
family units, and c) measures to be taken to protect the social and legal rights
of spouse and children in the case of dissolution or termination of marriage by
death or other reason.
Every society implies its ultimate control over this unit by its
institutionalization of marriage and the definition of rights and obligations that
arise as a result of marriage and consequent reproduction. Through this
ideology, women are constructed as wives and mothers, having vested with the
duty of child rearing and domestic labour. Men on the other hand are
constructed as husbands and fathers, responsible for the financial welfare of the
family. The sexual division of labour was closely associated with the
emergence of the family wages. In the process it led to womens economic
dependency on their husbands.
The emergence of the private i.e., domestic sphere and the public sphere
was a natural outcome of the familial ideology. Womens role within the
domestic realm as wives and mothers was regarded as a natural self- evident
product as to their biological role in reproduction. These ideas nurtured and
reinforced the public/private distinction, and the construction of family and
domestic relations as something private. Family has been understood as beyond
the state intervention operated to immunize the oppression of women within
this domestic sphere. Thereby the authority structure came to be considered as
patriarchal; succession to be patrilineal and living arrangements to be
patrilocal, marked by unequal gender relations of power running along the
0 In the Indian household, lines of hierarchy and authority are clearly drawn, and ideals of
conduct help maintain family harmony. All family members are socialized to accept the
authority of those above them in the hierarchy. The eldest male acts as family head, and his
wife supervises her daughters-in-law, among whom the youngest has the least authority.
Reciprocally, those in authority accept responsibility for meeting the needs of other family
members. See Suranjita Roy, Understanding Patriarchy, B.A Programme; Foundation Course,
Human Rights Gender and Environment, University of Delhi (2009),p.8
3
ShirinKudchedkar, Sabiha Al-Issa (Eds.), Violence Against Women: Women Against Violence,
Pencraft International, Delhi (1998) p.13.
Psychologists assert that people deal with their own insecurities and
inadequacies by abusing and controlling the lives of others within the safe
precincts of domestic walls. The domestic situation usually makes the abused
very vulnerable and fragile. Violence on the domestic front has been a part of
4
human society since times immemorial .Violence does not only include
beatings, rape or sexual abuse, it is anything which infringes on the rights of
the person to be treated as human being. Those violence which occurs within
the periphery of household is domestic violence.
The term domestic violence is often held synonymous with terms like
family violence, wife battering, wife beating, husband beating, husband abuse,
wife abuse etc. In recent times words like battering and battered are less
accepted because they do not cover other forms of violence which go beyond
physical abuse. These other forms of abuse also have the potential create to severe
mental and emotional disorders in individuals which can escalate in to acts of
suicide and self-damage .According to the myth of family sanctity, in which
tranquility and family harmony reign supreme, domestic violence exists as a
veritable incongruity. Taking into account the economic dependency of women in
the family ant the so called patriarchal family system in existence, it is invariably a
gendered crime perpetrated by men against women.
4
http:// www.domesticviolence. Last visited on 18th May 2010
5
Shahidullah, Shahid M. and Nana Derby, Criminalisation, Modernisation, and Globalisation:
The U S and International Perspectives on Domestic Violence, 10( 3), Global Crime,198
(2009)
ground in law and of the world engaged in legal reforms in domestic violence.9
23 World Health Organization, World Report on Violence and Health, Geneva, 2002.
24 Office of Violence Against Women, The Fact Sheets About the Office on Violence
against Women Focus Areas (2009), 1, http://www.usdoj.gov. Last visited on 2ndFebruary,2009
25 http//definitions on domestic violenceuk.org. Last visited on 23rd December 2009
9
L. Waldorf, C. Arab, and M. Guruswamy, CEDAW and the Human Rights -Based Approach to
Programming (United Nations Development Fund for Women (UNDFW), (2007), available at
http://www.unifem.org .Last visited on 10 th December, 2008).
violence and above all lack of legal information about victims rights11.
5888 Maya Majumadar, Social Status of Women in India, Dominant Publishers and
Distributors, New Delhi (2004),p.23
frustration because expectations about family members are not met, or the
result of dysfunctional familial relationships. In contrast, socio cultural models
emphasize social structure, norms, and values as causal variables in the
emergence of family violence. For example, the socio-learning approach to
violence emphasizes the influence of such variables as occupational status and
parent modeling. In particular, gender-sensitive approaches emphasize gender
roles and expectations and the devaluation of womens work inside and outside
the home as crucial to understanding family violence.
12
Domestic Violence in India- A Summary Report of a Multi- Site Household Survey:
International Center for Research on Women and The Centre for Development and Population
Activities, Washington, DC,(2000) pp.1-3
explain the causes of domestic violence in a society 13. The major theories that
highlight the causes are:
23 Feminist theory: Giving much stress to gender and power, the theory
states that domestic violence reflects the unequal power of men and
women in the society and which is reflected in the personal
relationships. The patriarchal structure of the society plays a dominant
role in all most al the social institutions including the family.
24 Family system theory: The advocates of this theory highlight the
sociological perspective emphasizing family structure as the cause of
domestic violence. The family represents a unit of social relations with
unique properties that make it a fertile ground for violence. The
vulnerability of each of the members of the household is ascertainable
and the membership in a family structure is not voluntary. The legal
intervention in the familial domain is not acceptable. All these serve to
cloak violence inside home.
25 Psychological and physiological theory: The individual problems are
highlighted as the cause of domestic violence under this theory. It holds
that personality disorders or early experiences of trauma predispose
some individuals to domestic violence. People with such underlying
problems or disorder may choose partners with whom they can re-enact
the dysfunctional relationship they had with their parents. This refers to
the neuro- biological sub traits of a human being having a predominant
domination over the life situations of the individual. This theory refers
to the behavior of the batterer/abuser in cases of domestic violence. It
emphasizes the factors such as brain structure, chemical imbalance,
dietary deficiency and hormonal factors as the root cause of
5888 This theory states that a womens experience of non- contingent nature of attempts t
control violence would, over a period of time, produce learned helplessness and depression as
the repeated violence diminishes her motivation to respond. Hence there will be passive
acceptance of the exploitative situation.
5889 Survivor theory views women are not passive victims but pro-active help seekers and
survivors. This theory in contrast to the social helplessness theory credits women with the
capacity to innovate newer strategies of coping and acknowledges the efforts of survivors in
seeking help from formal and informal sources.
5890 It asserts that social groups differ in respect t their typical levels of stress, deprivation,
frustration and in the sources at their disposal to deal with these stresses. Those individuals
with low resources tend to be more violent, Stress can arise out of economic imbalance, bad
housing, lack of job opportunities, frustrating work conditions etc. Men and women are
particularly attached certain determined social roles and expectations
17
The theory assumes that family like other social systems rests on some degree of force and
power which is necessary to control behavior of members. The family as per the theory has 4
set of resources to maintain stability such as economic variables, prestige or respect, love and
force of threat of force. Violence is employed either to dominate the position of torturer or for
dealing with imbalance in family interactions.
23 This theory is the product of historical pattern of systematic violence directed against
females in the household.
24This theory hold s that those who witness violence between parents or who themselves
experience abuse as children are likely to resort to violence in adulthood. This problem refers
to the inter-generational transmission of violence. It means an individual resorts to violence
through imitation.
The family and marriage are institutions in India where women and men
are socialised to perform strictly defined gender roles. These institutions remain
the foundational stones of the Indian society. At one end of the spectrum, the
causes may be personal or individual but they also have roots in the political,
economic, social and cultural arrangements. The probable causes are multiple and
have to be explored in all its dimensions in the Indian cultural backdrop.
5888 This theory explains growth of anger and violence when the principle of distributive
justice is violated. The theory describes violence on the basis of interaction between intimates
that is guided by the pursuit of rewards and avoidance of punishment and costs. By applying
the theory to the family violence, it may be said that people will use violence in a family if the
cost of being violent does not out weigh the rewards.
family. Again the notion that nobody needs to intervene when a man is violent
towards his wife, sister or mother is a norm. All this ensures a very intervention
free environment for men to perpetrate violence on women.
21
http://wost201hdomviol.tripod.com/groupactionproject/id4.html. Last visited on 18th
February 2013.
power theory is wedded to resource theory at this juncture i.e., the decision
making power within a given family derives from the value of the resources
that each person brings to the relationship. This in turn leads to the male
decision making process within the family. Accordingly those female partners
who lack power will be more likely to domestic violence. These situations
reinforce the culture violence theory.
2) Psychological dimension
22
http://www.napsipag.org/PDF/NEENA_JOSEPH.pdf. Last visited on 9th June 2012.
All these above factors throw light on the probable causes to the issue of
domestic violence perpetrated against women in India. To conclude, in simple
terms, the plight of a victim of domestic violence in the Indian context is as
expressed by Rebecca J. Burns in the following words:
23
http://wost201h_domviol.tripod.com/groupactionproject/id4.html.Last visited on 18th
February 2013.
0 Ibid.
This implies that, an average Indian woman has a tendency to bear the
harassment that is perpetrated against her either by the natal family or by her
husband and his family. In a man women relationship within the household a
common Indian house wife has a tendency to bear the harassment she is
subjected to by her husband and the family.
0 Values group and collective survival, with a focus on working interdependently toward the
good of all in the community; Values a holistic, ongoing process of growing and learning,
where grey areas are well tolerated and accepted; Tends to value being as one with nature;
Tends to value being in the here and now. The underlying question is How? as in how can
things be better or how can I help.
background chords of the familial self27. This type of system reflects the linear
world view28.
The Indians grow up in the extended families with members engaged in
the activities necessary to maintain the group as a cohesive and co-operating
unit. The ordering principles of this hierarchical set up are age and sex i.e.,
older persons decide and generally man make decisions in the household. The
goal is to promote the survival and collective welfare of family members and to
protect them from the incursions of the outside world. The overriding
principles of this hierarchical system are experiences of the aged and the
capabilities relating to the sex29.It follows that the organizations of sub systems
in India families will be different to those considered normal in western nuclear
families. Marriages are between families not individuals, as per the Indian
culture. The elevation of marital bond, their decision making power, is rather
discouraged in the Indian set up. Therefore the intergenerational sub systems
such as the mother-son dyad take precedence over the marital dyad.
0 Val Gillies, Family and Intimate Relationships: A Review of the Sociological Research
Families &South Capital ESRC Research Group South Bank university, London 15 (2003).
1 Ibid.
2 Values individual survival, with a focus on achieving independence as a hallmark of success
Tends to value having power, ownership, and control over nature; Tends to value doing, with a
focus on planning for the future; The underlying questions is Why? as in why did you do that
or why did something happen.
3 Older family members have more authority than younger members and men have greater
authority than women.
In India, when a bride enters her new family home, she occupies a very low
position within the family hierarchy. She is naturally highly dependent on the
goodwill of her in-laws, which mean she is potentially very vulnerable. In a
traditional Indian family, the wife is typically dependent, submissive, compliant,
demure, nonassertive, and goes out of her way to please her husband. Women are
entrusted with the responsibility of looking after the home and caring for the
children and the elderly parents and relatives. In the Indian scenario, relationship
between a man and his wife continue to be sacred one and are usually covered with
secrecy, excluding the possibility of any authoritative intervention in violent cases,
being a husband and wife private relationship issue. In addition to this, women of a
family, whether it be the mother or wife, is considered to carry the dignity of the
family. This fact worsens the problem much more and suppresses the
consciousness of women to a great intensity, so much so that, they in many a case,
despite their well-off social and economic status find themselves unable to voice
against the atrocities inflicted on them.
In short the Indian family systems differ significantly from those in the
West. Hence both the cultures will offer distinctive solutions to problem of
emancipation from domestic violence against women. Both have specific
conceptions of what constitutes healthy family, healthy relationships and of
how social relations should be organized to achieve this ideal. It is within these
power relationships that the conceptual adequacy of the Act is studied.
(Source: Domestic Abuse Intervention Project, 202 East Superior Street, Duluth, MN 55802)
0 UN Centre for Social Development and Humanitarian Affairs, Violence against women in
the family(1989)UN Doc ST/CSDHA/2,14
1 This diagram represents a teaching tool that is made use of in the western countries by
feminist advocates and social workers to explain the cycle of domestic violence perpetrated
against a woman within the family atmosphere. This diagram is the first point of understanding
the different forms of power and control exerted when domestic violence is perpetrated by the
man against a woman within a household. See www.ncdsv.org/images/powercontrolwheelno
shading.pdf. Last visited on 8 the August,2013
1.7 Hypotheses
23 Domestic violence against women affects human rights adversely.
5888 The inadequacy of the provisions of the Act may disintegrate the
cohesiveness of family system.
5889 The manner of implementation of the Act fails to answer the
current understandings of domestic violence holistically.
5890 The Act is a mere adoption of western law out of tune with Indian
cultural ethos and its established ideals resulting in systemic failures.
5888 Is the Act an efficient tool in solving the problem of women who
are victims of domestic violence?
5889 Do the rights guaranteed to the victims by the Act lead to
restitutive /restorative justice?
5890 What are the merits and demerits of the Act in its implementation
process?
5891 Do the judicial interpretations facilitate in promoting the
objectives of the Act?
5892 What are the issues and challenges emerging out of the new
enactment?
1.9 Methodology
The study is both doctrinal and analytical in nature. The doctrinal part
examines the theoretical bases and legal solutions offered to deal with domestic
violence. The legal provisions of Protection of Women from Domestic
Violence Act are analyzed in detail and the problems and flaws therein are
identified. The analytical part examines the need for culture specific treatment
of the issue which is driven by family based culture of protection and care as an
alternate mechanism to address the issue. The consequences of resort to
criminal sanctions and alternate dispute resolution mechanisms in handling
delicate familial matters are critically examined.
The relevant material is collected from primary and secondary sources.
Apart from the statutes and judicial decisions, following are the sources: Scholarly
books on domestic abuse in general and UK, USA and India in particular; Peer-
reviewed papers in academic journals of various disciplines; Government
publications, Reports and policy papers, relevant websites and databases
in general legal regime. The study deals with the working and problems of the
Act in the Indian cultural set up, the motivations and legal remedies
guaranteed. A brief overview of U.S. and U.K. models are done to show the
contrast and extent of the acknowledgment of the issue in developed countries.
The major task undertaken through the study is to find out the loopholes
existing in the present Indian legal scenario to combat the issue and suggest
suitable recommendations in consonance with the specific Indian cultural
values to overcome the same. The study ascertains the problem areas and
challenges in the working of the Act.
The focus is limited to a doctrinal study on the topic because of the
inherent limitations in attempting an empirical study. Moreover the non-reliable
data is likely to come forth in, on the issue of domestic violence as it will be
viewed as an invasion into familial privacy. Exhaustive case illustrations on
domestic violence are not decipherable from the judgments that have been
rendered by the courts in India. The law and practice of domestic violence in
United States of America and United Kingdom is discussed briefly and the
comparative analysis is made with giving only a cursory glance and not a
comprehensive one, due to the existence of variety of laws on the same issue in
different jurisdictions within the same countries. While discussing the issue of
domestic violence, the law, its implementation and the outcome is the only
ambit of the study. The multidimensional plight of the victims including
physical and psychological impact of domestic violence on women and
children is analyzed to the extent of concern of access to justice and not from a
medico-legal point of view.
In short, keeping these limitations and theoretical framework in mind, this
research study attempts to review the historical/philosophical trends of domestic
violence in India, the existing legal remedies to combat the problem of domestic
violence, the changed situation with the advent of the new Act on domestic
violence and to enquire upon as to what extent the Act serves its purpose.
.. ..
Chapter 2
HISTORICAL PERCEPTIONS ON THE
CONCEPT OF DOMESTIC VIOLENCE AGAINST
WOMEN-INDIAN AND WESTERN OVERVIEW
Life's greatest moments occur behind closed doors. So, too, do some of
modern life's most outrageous exploitations.The family is exalted as the very
foundation of human existence, a haven for love, care and loyalty. Family is a
concept which is often taken for granted as representing a group of people
related by blood and marriage. It is asserted throughout the national and
international Human Rights documents as the basic and fundamental unit of the
23 International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, 1966, Art.23 states The family is
the natural and fundamental group unit of society and is entitled to protection by society and
the State.
5888 Richard Collier, Masculinity, Law and the Family, Routledge, London and New York
(1995), p.51.
3
Holborn, Sociology Themes and Perspectives, Harper Collins Publishers Limited, London (5th
edn.,2000),p.504.
23 Ratna Kapur &Brenda Cossman, Subversive Sites: Feminist Engagement with Law in
India, Sage Publications, New Delhi (1996) p.89.
and the functioning of the family.5The significance of family for women is also
more vital than that of men, because while a man is allowed an independent
existence, womans identity and survival is not socially conceivable without
family. Human rights violations from foeticide, incest to women, battering and
murder are committed within the safe confines of the home, making woman
highly vulnerable in families. They remain largely invisible, being considered
as family matter. The emphasis is always on preservation of the family at all
6
cost even if it compromises womens safety and security.
As relationships are universal, so is the form of co-residence, intimacy,
sexuality and emotional bonds. But the forms they take can be infinitely
variable. So the rights and freedoms guaranteed to women in the family
depends on how the familial ideology reacts to it.
2.1 Gender Inequality-Philosophical Underpinnings on Roles,
Rights and Domestic Violence
Simone de Beauvoir has said:
she is defined and differentiated with reference to man and not
he with reference to her; she is the incidental, the inessential as
opposed to the essential, he is the Subject, he is the Absolute--she is
7
the other.
The core running through the work The Second Sex (1949), is that of
woman being the other (sex). Accordingly women are socially constructed
rather than biologically determined i.e., .the construction of society, of
language, thought, and religion and of the family all rests on the assumption
that the world is male.
23 427-347 BC as cited in Mamta Rao, Law Relating to Women and Children, Eastern
Book Company Lucknow (2005), p 325.
9.384-322 BC, ibid.
10
Supra n.7, p. 85.
that family unit, it is the husband who is the master of the household, as he is
by nature more fitted to rule than the female. Thus his approach to women was
also functional. He declared the Greek city state (Polis) to be natural and Greek
family with the subordination of wife, children and slaves as the best form of
family structure. Slavery was a natural state for him. It could be either male or
female. He prescribes the role and status of a female and a slave. Neither
women nor slaves participate in polis 11 but in the private sphere of life, each
12
has a different role to play. Thus a female was characterized as having a
female body and deliberative capacity without authority. Similarly a female
slave has a female body but no deliberative capacity. The slaves primary
function was to serve his or her master while the females primary natural
function was reproduction and the maintenance of the family. The functions
ascribed to females depend on the extent of their rationality, which was
government.14
5888 The public/private distinction derives from ancient Greek thought which drew a
distinction between the polis ,the public sphere and the oikis, the private; the public world
was meant for male governance, the private is that of the home occupied by women and
children.
5889 Supra n.5, p.88.
5890 The result of something wrong with the conception that created them-either their
parents were too young or too old or too diverse in age or one of them was not healthy .Nature
always aimed at perfection, and Aristotle termed woman as a deformity but one which occurs
in the ordinary course of nature. Merry E. Wiesner, New Approaches to European History:
Women and Gender in Early Modern Europe, Cambridge University Press(2008),p.18.
14
Mamta Rao, Law Relating to Women and Children, Eastern Book Company Lucknow
(2005), p.1.
Rights of Women against Domestic Violence-The Law and Emerging
Challenges 30
Historical perception on the concept of domestic violence against women-Indian
and western overview
23True law is right reason in agreement with nature; it is of universal application, and is
everlasting. The appeal to a higher divine law as a control over the naked power has been
apparent throughout the history.
24 I C or 11:7-9.
25 According to Elaine Pangels, while it is true that Catholics revere Mary as the
mother of Jesus ,she cannot be identified as divine in her own right, she is mother of God
,she is not God the Mother on an equal footing with God the Father. Supra n.3 at p.91.
18
Thomas Hobbes deviated from the patriarchism of the seventeenth
century. To him, sharing of power was impossible as one cannot serve two masters
and supreme power is indivisible. Reading the version of Hobbes reveals that the
subordination of women was due to conventions and human conduct.
5888 Patriarchy is a form of social organization in which a male is the head of the family and
descent. Kinship and title are traced through the male line; any society governed by such a
system. Harper Collins English Dictionary (3rd edn.,1991),p.143.
19
Rama Mehta, Socio Legal Status of Women in India, Mittal Publications,1987, Delhi
(1987),p.16.
thought must have a sentimental foundation which demands chastity which can
she is fit for a family life and man for the outward life. 22 He never advocated
exclusion of women from public sphere.
John S. Mill in his book, The Subjection of Women has considered the
relationship between the sexes as one characterized by the legal subordination
of one sex to the other. According to him it was not the result of any conscious
thought or experimentation with differing forms of social organization. Based
on the physical inferiority women were subjugated by men in the earliest
twilight of human society and it later on got concretized into rules of law. He
propounded that the emancipation of women to a level of equality with men
was not solely for the happiness of women themselves, but was a prerequisite
for the improvement of mankind. Liberty, individuality, democracy and justice
run like a golden thread cherishing equal rights to women except when some
recognised social expediency required otherwise. He considered family as a
school of sympathy in equality, of living together in love, without power on
23
one side and obedience on the other. Slavery having been abolished, Mill
considered marriage as the last vestige of slavery in the society.
2.1.6 The Marxist Thinking
In the Origins of the Family, Private Property and the State, Friedrich
Engels argues that the position of women in society has been determined by the
changing structures of marriage which itself is determined by economic forces.
In the early society, women determined the line of succession. This mother
right needed to be destroyed if male supremacy was to be secured. With the
successful destruction of mother right, womens subordinate status in society
was ensured. The introduction of machinery which facilitated more efficient
agriculture enabled man to enslave other men and to exclude women from their
traditional economic role. Thus women were confined to the domestic
sphere-- to the hearth, home and children. The introduction of private property
and the destruction of mother right represented the greatest historical defeat
of the feminine sex.24 Bacon in his book Abridgement of the Law (1736) has
quoted that the husband hath by law the power and dominion over the wife,
and may beat her, but not in violent or cruel manner.
or a second wife totally obedient and deferential. 25Jesus preached that men and
women were equally capable of achieving life after death and that women as
well as men should not let their domestic responsibilities come before spiritual
well being. Church on becoming hierarchical excluded women from church
offices and priestly functions.
Legal scholars like Jean Bodin defended for the list of female vices to
prove that women were naturally inferior and so should men be allowed to hold
public offices. Protestant reformers did not break sharply with medieval
scholastic theologians and cited three purposes of marriage i.e., procreation of
children, the avoidance of sin and mutual help and companionship. The
mutuality in marriage pronounced in the marriage sermons all stressed the
importance of husbandly authority and wifely obedience. Men were also given
specific advice as to how to enforce their authority and often it included
physical coercion, in both Continental and English marriage manuals. Marriage
was a womans highest calling, even though it brought physical dangers and
5888 It had accorded a secondary legal status based on the inability to perform feudal
military service. So any unmarried women was to have a legal guardian to undergo such
procedures or a trial by ordeal for her. This gender based guardianship gradually died out in the
later Middle Ages as court proceedings replaced physical trials and unmarried women and
widows gained the right to hold land on their own and appear in court on their own behalf. But
they could not serve as witnesses to a will.
5889 Until 1884, a wife refusing her husbands sexual demands could be imprisoned for such
refusal and the husband could apply for an order of restitution of conjugal rights against his
wife. Moreover until 1891, to enforce his rights, husband was entitled to imprison his wife in
the matrimonial home.
5890 The law only became alert to the problem of domestic violence in the 1970s attests to
that invisibility. See e.g., Domestic Violence and Matrimonial Proceedings Act , 1975,s.1.,;
Domestic Proceedings and Magistrates Courts Act, 1978,s.16.
The position of wives under English law with regard to marital sexual
intercourse i.e. implied consent theory was determined by Lord Mathew Hale
in The History of the Pleas of the Crown: The husband cannot be guilty of a
rape committed by himself upon his lawful wife, for by their mutual
matrimonial consent and contract the wife hath given herself up in this kind
unto her husband which she cannot retract. 32 The exemption of marital rape
from the purview of the criminal law sustained the dominant familial ideology
that the wife was the exclusive property of the husband. The same concept was
applied in Popkin v. Popkin (1794) in which Lord Stowell opined that The
husband has a right to the person of his wife but not if her health is
endangered.33It was a noteworthy use of the term person given that women
were not viewed as persons until the courts declared that they had achieved
39
According to the traditional view in feminist thinking sexual or domestic violence is
privatized, pathologised and de-politicised.
23 Julie Goldscheid, Elusive Equality in Domestic and Sexual Violence Law
Reform,35(4) Florida State University Law Review 731(2007).
24Suranjita Ray,Understanding Patriarchy, BA Programme II; Foundation Course, Human
Rights, Gender & Environment, University of Delhi (2009),p.4.
25Several womens movement demanded female suffrage during the 1840s and 1850s in
United States and United Kingdom. The famous Seneca Falls Convention in 1848 marked the
birth of womens rights movement which among other things called for female suffrage.
Women were granted the right to vote in the US Constitution in 1920.
private property.43
Socialist Feminism: socialist feminism aims at transforming basic structural
arrangements of society so that categories of class, gender, sexuality and race no
44
longer act as barriers to share equal resources Womens subordination within
capitalism results from their economic exploitation as wage labourers and their
patriarchal oppression as mothers, consumers and domestic labourers.
5888 Frederick Engels in The Origin of Family, Private Property and the State (1884) stated
that with the emergence of private property, womens housework sank into insignificance in
comparison to mans productive labour. Thus maternal authority gave place to paternal
authority and property was to be inherited from father to son and not from woman to her clan.
The bourgeois families which owned private property emerged as patriarchal families where
women were subjugated. Such patriarchal families became oppressive as men ensured that their
property passed on only to their sons. Therefore bourgeois family and private property as a
byproduct of capitalism subordinated and oppressed women.
5889 Socialist feminists deny the necessary and logical link between sex and gender
differences. They argue that the link between child bearing and child rearing is cultural rather
than biological and have challenged that biology is destiny by drawing a sharp distinction
between sex and gender. The relationship between sexes is rooted in the social and economic
structure itself. Therefore women can only be emancipated after social revolution brings about
structural change.
5890 For radical feminists sexual relations are political acts, emblematic of male/female
power relationships. The traditional political theory which divide personal and political spheres
and believe that family is nonpolitical and personal has been questioned by radical feminists
who argue that family is that space where maximum exploitation of women takes place. It is
this public-private divide which legitimizes exploitation of women. In fact, it is essential that
the private sphere must be mapped in terms of the same values of justice, equality and freedom
which are necessary in the public sphere
feminists accept womens attitudes and values as different from men. They
believe that in certain respects women are superior to men and possess the
qualities of creativity, sensitivity and caring which men can never develop.
Postmodern feminists claim that there is no fixed female identity. The socially
constructed identities can be reconstructed or deconstructed.
Lesbian feminism and cultural feminism are two types of feminist
separations advocating the creation of women identified world through the
attachments women have to each other. They believe that since patriarchy is
organized through mens relations with other men, unity among women is the
only effective means for liberating women46.The prioritization of safety and
accountability over autonomy is consistent with the school of feminist thought
that has coloured a great deal of domestic violence theory and policy making.
Dominance feminism focuses on womens subordinated and victimized status
and argues that the legal system can best serve those victims of violence by
enforcing policies that ensure safety, regardless of what an individual womens
preferences might be47.
The feminist analysis examines characteristics of domestic violence, in
the light of international legal understanding of what constitutes torture and
cruelty, the inhuman and degrading treatment it entails. They affirm that
process, purposes, and consequences of torture and that of domestic violence
are startlingly similar. That whether torture committed in domestic context or
that inflicted officially, does not reduce its intensity of violence, nor does it
demand different standards of judgments and actions on part of state. The
existing international human rights instruments, has both a separate provision
for womens rights (i.e. Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of
23 Therefore while earlier feminists struggled for a legally equal position for women and
demanded democratic rights, which included right to education and employment, right to own
property, right to vote, right to birth control, right to divorce, today feminists have gone beyond
demanding mere legal reforms to end discrimination between men and women. They have raised
issues of violence against women, rape, unequal wages, discriminatory personal laws, the sexual
division of labour, distribution of power within the family, use of religion to oppress women.
24 Leigh Goodmark. Autonomy Feminism: An Anti-Essentialist Critique of Mandatory
Interventions in Domestic Violence Cases, 37(1) Florida State University Law Review 4,5
(2009).
moral, obedient, chaste, and one who upholds cultural traditions and family
unity.
48
K. Uma Devi, Womens Equality in India:A Myth or Reality? Discovery Publishing
House,New Delhi(2000),p.15.
submit and acquiesce to the desires of their valued male counterparts while
5888 Lauren L. Tichy & Judith V. Becker & Melissa M. Sisco, The Downside of Patriarchal
Benevolence: Ambivalence in Addressing Domestic Violence and Socio-Economic
Considerations for Women of Tamil Nadu, India.24 Journal of Family Violence 547 (2009).
5889 Amita Sahaya, Religion and the Patriarchal Lens, 13(3) Womens Link 28( 2007).
51
Referring to verses in the Mahabharatas Anusasana Parva and Santi Parva. Ibid.
23 Halhed, A Code of Gentoo Laws ixv. A Code of Gentoo Laws is an English rendering of
Vivadarnavasetu, compiled under the direction of Warren Hastings by a team of Brahmana
of people who had few rights; and was an attempt to homogenize the category
of women as who deserved only to be subordinated and controlled. Womens
natural urges or wrongs i.e., lust for sex, jewels, fine furniture, handsome
clothes etc., were compared to evil as a fire not satisfied with the burning fuel.
It was in this context Manus famous injunction was understood. i.e., her
father protects her in childhood, her husband protects her in youth, her sons
protect her in old age: a woman does not deserve independence. 53 The woman
was regarded as a species of property which passed on into the husbands
family on her marriage.
The aim of the Hindu marriage was to help full growth and development
of the husband and the wife and to promote the preservation and progress of
society and its culture by enjoining upon the couple the procreation of children
legal experts, done by N.B.Halhed and published in the year 1776. See B.D. Chattopadhyaya
(Ed.), Readings in Early Indian History-Women in Early Indian Societies, Manohar Publishers
(1999),p.113.
53
Janaki Nair, Women and Law in Colonial India: A Social History (Published in collaboration
with National Law School of India University, Banglore) Kali for women ,New Delhi
(1996),p.32.
54
S.R.Shastri, Women in the Vedic Age, Bharatiya Vidya Bhavan, Bombay(1954), pp.17,18.
55
A.S.Altekar, The Position of Women in Hindu Civilization From Pre-Historic Times to the
Present Day, Motilal Banarsidass Publishers Private Limited, Delhi (1959),p.100.
5888 R.V.1,66,3.
5889 R.V.III,53 .4.
5890 Supra n. 40, p.95.
5891 Manu, ix,101.
5892 Supra n. 13.p.54.
offence of not being sufficiently submissive. The differential treatment was due
to the simple fact that women were no longer able to effectively oppose these
61
absurd theories and claims as they were uneducated and ignorant about it.
The general adoption of the Purdah system by the ruling and aristocratic
families of Hindu community was subsequent to the advent of the Muslim rule. It
was seen as a mark of high status and prestige. Naturally husbands began to claim
and exercise a greater control over them which proved detrimental to their
participation in the social and public life activities. This created a favourable
atmosphere for the spread of the theory that woman should lead a life of seclusion.
virtues.63As mother she is most revered, but as sexual partner she is seen as an
61
Id., p.59.
23 Supra n. 52 ,p. 29.
24 Manu 2.213-214.
64
Paul Bowen (Ed.), Themes and Issues in Hinduism, Cassell, London and
Washington(1998),p.67.
23Uttararamacharit,Act,vi,39:Their love is uniform both in prosperity and adversity, and
adjusts itself to surrounding circumstances; it affords the best solace to each others hearts; old
age does not diminish its flavour; when the veil of reserve drops down in course of time, it
develops into an ever-abiding affection.
24 Manu, ix, 101.
25 Manu, ix, 46.
26 Sati-A virtuous woman practice of immolation on the funeral pyre of ones husband.
27 Supra n. -49,pp.74,75.
70
Jeebanlata Salam, Women and Domestic Violence: Human Rights Perspective,10(1)
Womens Link 7 (2004).
from the west. A cursory reading of some of the passages in the Bible, clearly
71
reveals the fact: God by creating Adam first and also by creating woman
72
for man, has set the gender based role and responsibility of males in the most
basic unit of society (the family) to be that of leader, provider and self-
73
sacrificial protector, and likewise has set the gender based role and
74 75
responsibility of females to be that of help and nurture and lifegiving
76
under male leadership and protection
2.2.3 The Teachings of Quran
23 Gen.2:18;Cor.11:8.
24 Gen.2:18,20,22;1 Cor.11:9.
25 Eph.5:25; 1 Peter 3:7.
26 Gen.2:18.
27 Gen.3:20
28 1 Peter 3:7. supra n. 49, p.29.
29 R.S. Verma (Ed.), Human Rights-Burning Issue of the World, Vol. III, Indian Publishers
& Distributors, Delhi (2000), p.647.
30 The Book of Revelations which Muslims believe to be Gods words transmitted
through the agency of Angel Gabriel to the Prophet Mohammed. It is regarded as the Magna
Carta of Human Rights as it concerns itself to free human beings from the bondage of
traditionalism, authoritarianism ;political, economic or other; tribalism, racism, sexism, slavery
or any thing that prohibits or inhibits human beings from actualizing the Quranic vision of
human destiny embodied in the classic proclamation; Towards Allah is thy limit.
31 The practical traditions of the Prophet Mohammed.
32 The oral Revelations attributed to the Prophet Mohammed.
33 Jurisprudence (schools of law).
34 Surah5:Maidah:32.
35 Surah 17:Al-Isra: 70.
intrusion from within or without.84The fruits of labour belong to the one who
and not by gender, race, colour, lineage, wealth etc. 88Equal human dignity by
birth was proclaimed as a Divine Decree. 89Gender equity is a basic theme of
the scripture.90Thus, patriarchy is not inherent in the Quran but rather has
been read into it throughout the centuries of patriarchal dominance of Muslim
societies.
Conclusion
people think, value and believe, something which they hold as ideals92. The
idea of religion and all that entails is perhaps more central to human kind, its
quest and reinforcement of identity, than other forces. It is the point of
reference that dictates and influences our socio cultural norms and the sub-texts
of our existence, in a variety of ways more insidious and encompassing than
even the identification through nation or nationhood.
.. ..
23Frances Raday, Culture Religion, and Gender, Oxford University Press and New York
University School of Law (2003), p.1: Con. Volume, No.4 (2003), p.666.
Chapte
r3
THE NATURE OF DOMESTIC VIOLENCE
A HUMAN RIGHTS DISCOURSE
The right to be free from domestic violence includes within its ambit the
right to equality and right to live with human dignity. The Constitution of India
running along in the same spirit upholds the ideal of equality under Article 14
and right to live with human dignity under Article 21. Equality is the
foundation on which all other rights are built. Since domestic violence
primarily targets women, it violates the concept of equality and non-
1
Saroj Iyer, The Struggle to be Human: Womens Human Rights, Books for Change, Bangalore
(1999), p.3.
2
Vishaka and Others v. State of Rajasthan, A.I.R. 1997 S.C. 3011
3
Bina Agarwal and Pradeep Panda-Toward Freedom from Domestic Violence: The Neglected
Obvious ,18(3) Journal of human Development and Capabilities; Routledge Publishing Ltd.
( 2007),p.360
5888 Universal Declaration of Human Rights (UDHR), Art. 1 adopted by the United Nations
General Assembly in December 1948 and which all UN members, including India, are
expected to honor, specifically states: All humans are born free and equal in dignity and
rights. Article 2 states that all are entitled to these rights and freedoms without distinction of
any kind, such as race, colour, sex, language, religion, political or other opinion, national or
social origin, property or other status. In addition, Art. 7 states that all are equal before the
law and are entitled without any discrimination to equal protection of the law.
5
UDHR, Art. 3 and ICCPR, Art. 6 and 9
23 This theory means insecurity and dependence on the males aggravates the situation of
a woman within a household and she is confined to the feelings that she is helpless and that
there is no recourse wherein she endures pain and suffering.
Woman who is a victim of domestic violence within the family loses her
ability to be an active citizen or seek her entitlements as a citizen the
undermining of her sense of self gets reflected in the assumption that violence
she face within the family is something personal and not political. And more
over the issue of domestic violence has not been targeted a good political
option. Thus the right to equal access to the public service of the country and to
take part in the conduct of public affairs, including decision- making is
restricted. The relative silence on domestic abuse in society and in the media
underlines the failure of transparency guarantees on this front. The dynamics of
domestic violence if ignored leads to non- effective functioning of a range of
public policy interventions in the field.
arrive at a defined self understanding and left unable to choose and invest
energy into the right careers.7 And often some of them might end up at suicide.
7
Bhargavi V. Davar, Mental Health: From A Gender Perspective, Sage Publications, New
Delhi (2001),p.236.
5888 UDHR, Art. 5 ; ICCPR, Art. 7
5889 It requires three main elements: (1) severe physical or mental pain or suffering; (2)
intentional infliction for certain purposes including punishment, coercion, intimidation, and
discrimination; and (3) involvement of a public official. even though India has yet to ratify the
Swami Vivekananda has rightly remarked: Just as a bird could not fly
with one wing only, a nation would not march forward if the women are left
behind.The oppression of women in the family results in the maintenance of
women as second-class citizens thus depriving the country of womens full
potential for taking part in the developmental process. This is a serious
developmental problem for the country. It is in this wider framework, that the
Convention Against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman, or Degrading Treatment or Punishment
(CAT), provisions regarding torture in the UDHR and ICCPR which generally adopt CATs
definition of torture, and both under which India has obligations, can be used to support Indian
domestic violence claims.
violation of human rights of women occurring at the basic cell of the society
i.e. the family needs to be viewed from a larger sociological framework.
3.1 International Human Rights Responses to Domestic Violence
23The domain of International law was held to be governing only the relationship between
nation states or the treatment of individuals by the government or public officials. The
traditional view was that international law is applicable only to governments and their
representatives, but not to private actors as in the case of family violence. Domestic violence
against women occurring within the four walls of the family was defined as a private issue and
was thus kept outside the ambit of International law.
The gross human rights violations against women within the family
remained invisible and ignored. To break the barriers between the violence against
women in the public life and private life were one of the greatest challenges
undertaken by the United Nations Organization and its affiliated agencies The
11
necessary theory of accountability of states for their inaction in cases of violence
against women within the home led to the gradual acceptance of the notion that the
12
state making little or no effort to stop violence is tacitly condoning it. This inter-
relationship between the accountability of international law and its inactiveness in
13
private matters turned it into a constructive act of the state. A state also has an
obligation under human rights law to apply its laws without discriminating against
women and to provide an adequate remedy for acts done by private individuals. A
states institutionalized inaction in the face of a pervasive domestic violence
problem violates international obligations. This analytical shift in the international
community, allowing domestic violence to be identified and addressed as a human
rights violation led to the development of specific international legal obligations
directly addressing domestic violence.
5888 The theory of due diligence, equal protection of laws, freedom from torture that
upholds the right of the individual to live with human dignity and security emphasized the
theory of accountability of states to ensure the human rights of its members.
5889 The Inter American Court of Human Rights has issued a judgment in the case of
Velsquez Rodrguez, which articulates one of the most significant assertions of State
responsibility for acts by private individuals; this represents an authoritative interpretation of
an international standard on State duty. The opinion of the Court could also be applied, by
extension, to article 2 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights (ICCPR),
which requires States parties to ensure to all individuals the rights recognized in that Covenant.
In the same case, the Inter American Court further reaffirmed that States are "obliged to
investigate every situation involving a violation of the rights protected by [international law]".
It discussed the scope of the duty of States, under article 1 of the American Convention on
Human Rights, "to ensure" the rights within the treaty to all persons within their jurisdiction.
13
Kelly D. Askin, Dorean M. Koenig (Eds.),Women and International Human Rights Law,
Transnational Publishers, Inc, Ardsley, New York, Vol-1,(1999),p.243.
discussed about at the international level. This happens as we have not yet
analyzed what types of violence constitute domestic violence for which a state
is responsible for. In this context I would like to import the concept of
patriarchal terrorism referred to by sociology theorist Michael Jhonson to
refer to a violence which is the product of patriarchal traditions of mens rights
to control the women that results in the form of terroristic control of women by
their male heads of family that involves the systematic use of not only
violence, but economic subordination, threats, isolation and other control
tactics. The term domestic violence is applicable to a miscellany of harms.
Exempting a very few minor harms it is very necessary to understand and
acknowledge the concept of systemic intimate violence within the family
qualitatively constitutes and has a significant and ever present negative effect
on our society within the term domestic violence which caters to its
internationalizing factor. Distinguishing between types of violence is
objectionable but necessary in this context. Grievous bodily harm and
attempted murder; rape and sexual assault; torture and ill-treatment; etc.
requires a response at the international level and review of national legal
systems through the lens of international law.It encompasses violence which is
invasive of the victims mental and physical autonomy in away that is
particularly destructive of the individuals dignity.
Systemic intimate violence within the four corners of the family and
between inmates consists of five elements which together constitute an extreme
violation of an individuals human rights that ought to trigger the provisions of
international law. These elements are
14
systems .Assessing severity of a violence that is perpetrated in a private space
to fix international responsibility is a difficult task. The level of severity in
cases of domestic violence albeit in a context of love, intimacy and domesticity,
is such that it shocks human conscience. According to the European Court of
Human Rights, the severity of the harm depends on all the circumstances of the
case, like the nature and context of the treatment, its duration, and its physical
and mental effects and in some cases, the sex, age and state of health of victim
etc.15.To fix the culpability of the accused it must depend not on the gravity of
16
the act but on the sensitivity of the victim. Here again the challenge of non
identifiability of such harm creeps in making it insufficiently serious to warrant
hospitalization or police intervention or to prove in judicial proceedings. The
incorrect assumption that because the violence is committed in private, by
anon-state official and often within the context of a relationship, the violence is
neither severe nor extreme is to be done away with. Where a victim suffers
lasting physical or emotional damage, and the state fails to provide effective
police intervention and basic shelters to help mitigate the consequences thereof,
the state reasonably can, and should, be held accountable for its failings.
14
See e.g.,UDHR, ICCPR, ICESCR,CEDAW, DEVAW, the African Charter, the Rome Statute etc.
15
A v. The United Kingdom,(App NO100/1997/884/1096):1998 27 E H R R 611,para 20.The
severity of acts of domestic violence was recognized by the E C H R in the case of Opuzv
Turkey.(App No.33401/02)ECHR 9 june2009
16
The intensity of harm is measured not from an inconvenience or discomfort level but rather
consists of physical and psychological abuse and outrages that any human being would have
experienced as such.(Discussion on mens rea component in respect of criminal liability.in
Prosecutor v.Kunarac, Judgment )ICTY -96-23-T(22February 2001) paras 508-514; See also
Prosecutor v. Aleksovski, ( Judgment) ICTY-95-14/1-T (25 June1999),para54.
The failure of the State to help the victims: The violence inflicted is systemic
in the sense that it occurs in a society in which the state in question has omitted
to satisfy the standards that will help to remedy such violence. This failure gets
manifested in deficient police services, inaccessible or inefficient
E.g., Mexico and Nicaragua. In Mexico, the Law of Assistance and Prevention of Domestic
Violence 1996 defines the violence as an act of power or omission that is recurring, intentional
and cyclical, and is aimed at dominating, subordinating, controlling or harming any member of
the family through physical, verbal, psycho-emotional or sexual violence.
court processes, poor health services and lack of economic assistance in the
18
form of welfare systems or laws .
The nature of the harm inflicted being silent effectively removes the
existence of the harm from the realm of reality. As far as the state is concerned, the
abuse or violence disappears. The systemic failure of the state to protect victims of
severe intimate violence and punish its perpetrators constitutes an endorsement of
the harm, implicit or otherwise. The conduct of the state, therefore by virtue of its
19
failure to act, perpetuates the violence, creating an atmosphere of impunity . It is
in this manner that the States role is triggered in International Law.
The seriousness of the element of state failure is clearly explained in the case of Opuz v Turkey
in which the ECHR held that Turkey had violated its obligations under Art.2 (right to life),
Art.3 (right to be free from torture and cruel, inhuman or degrading treatment)and Art.14(right
to equal enjoyment of the Convention Rights) by failing tom assist the applicant and her
mother when they had sought the assistance of the State to prevent abuse by the applicants
husband. .This case exemplifies how the state can be responsible for continued acts of violence
between intimate family members.
19
Bonita Meyersfeld, Domestic Violence and International Law ,Hart Publishing
Ltd.UK(2010), p.142
UDHR, Art 16 and 3; The International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights,1966, Art. 23 ; The
International Covenant on Economic, Social and Cultural Rights,1966,Art10 ; American Convention
on Human Rights,1969,Art 17; African Charter on Human and Peoples Rights,1981; ARAB Charter
on Human Rights,2004,Art 33.
See Preamble of International Covenant on Economic, Social and Cultural Rights,1966; Art
of Declaration on Social Progress And Development,1969; adopted by General Assembly
Resolution 2542 (xxiv) on 11 th december.1969.
European Union Charter of Fundamental Rights,2000, Art.33.
23
between the family ,the child and the woman, have all been affirmed
throughout the standards set by the United Nations Organisation. Family is
upheld as the dominant ideology, through which a particular set of household
and gender relationships are universalized and naturalized.
Human Rights Treaties25 forms the basic guideline to the fundamental rights
and freedoms of human beings in the international arena. These documents do
not explicitly address the issue of domestic violence. Yet its principles
articulate the concepts of fundamental rights and freedoms that are commonly
violated in domestic violence cases. Those rights include the right to equality,
right to equal protection of the laws, right to life, liberty and security of the
person, right to physical and mental integrity, and right to be free from
discrimination, torture, degrading and inhuman treatment. The mandates set up
under the International Bill of Rights and the efforts of the United Nation
Organisation ,through international conventions, declarations, and conferences
has brought to light the issue of domestic violence and the need to evolve laws
to combat it both in the international and regional forums.
Chapter ii Global Framework of Beijing Declaration And Platform For Action, adopted at the
Fourth World Conference on Women: Action for Equality, Development and Peace,1995 held
at Beijing ,on 15 th September 1995.
It consists of The Universal Declaration of Human Rights, adopted by the United Nations
General Assembly in 1948, and its implementing covenants, the International Covenant on
Civil and Political Rights (ICCPR) and the International Covenant on Economic Social and
Cultural Rights(ICESCR),which entered in force in 1976
It consists of the International Covenant on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial
Discrimination,1965;the Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination against
Women (CEDAW),1979;the Convention Against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or
Degrading Treatment t or Punishment,1984;and the Convention on the Rights of the
Child,1989.
26
Rights - proclaimed in 1948 by the General Assembly is considered as the
cornerstone of UNs human rights system .It upholds and protects the dignity and
integrity of human beings. The golden thread of fundamental human rights and
freedom is embedded in its provisions when it exhorts that all human beings are
27
born free and equal in dignity and rights. All the rights and freedoms set forth
therein are held entitled to all human beings without distinctions of race, colour,
28
sex, language, religion, national origin, property, political opinion etc.
29 30
Right to life, liberty and security of person and the right to be
The Declaration consisting of 30 articles was written by Eleanor Roosevelt, chair of the UN
Commission on Human Rights, and 17 other international delegates. It is held to be the primary
international articulation of the fundamental and inalienable rights of all human beings.
27
Universal Declaration of Human Rights, Art. 1
28
Id., Art. 2
International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, Art. 6(1)
30
, Universal Declaration of Human Rights, Art. 3;International Covenant on Civil and Political
Rights,Art.9(1)
Universal Declaration of Human Rights, Art. 6
Id., Art. 5; International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, Art. 7
The Convention Against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or
Punishment, Art. 1
In the U.S. in order to satisfy the third element, the victim must be in the
control or physical custody of the offender, and a public official must have
awareness of the torture prior to the fact and has breached his legal
responsibility to intervene to prevent the torturous activity. Physical control can
be contended to mean not just imprisonment or detention but also as
overpowering or domination of the body. Moreover, a police officer who
receives abuse complaints from domestic violence victims and does not
intervene to prevent future abuse may meet the involvement of a public official
criterion. Thus, even though India has yet to ratify the Convention Against
Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman, or Degrading Treatment or Punishment,
provisions regarding torture in the UDHR and ICCPR which generally adopt
CATs definition of torture, and both under which India has obligations, can be
The Declaration further ensures the right to marry, to found a family and
35
equal rights as to marriage and at its dissolution . It exhorts free and full
consent in entering into marriage.36 Moreover the family is upheld as the
natural and fundamental group unit of society and emphasizes on its protection
by both society and the state.37 The family, as being acknowledged as the basic
unit of the society, the violence perpetrated against women within the family
and their right to personal dignity, life and security within the family receives
recognition in the international and national platform.
Thus it can be inferred that any form of violence against women which
is seen as a threat to their life, liberty or security of person or which is torture
or cruel, inhuman or degrading treatment is a violation of the international
human rights obligations of the member states, and thus contrary to the
principles of the Universal Declaration . The International Bill of Rights resorts
to a gender neutral terminology while pronouncing the rights of individuals.
The provisions contained therein begins with terms like no one, every one,
all etc., which means that they are equally applicable to women and implicitly
refers to the protection to be accorded to them in cases of domestic violence.
cases38 women have used the communication procedure under the first
Optional Protocol to the ICCPR to complain to the Human Rights Committee
of the UN about sex discrimination which breaches the ICCPR.
38
The Mauritian Women Case (Communication No. 35/1978); Broeks v. The Netherlands
(Communication No. 172/1984); Avellanal v. Peru (Communication No. 202/1986)
Economic and Social Council which falls under the purview of ICESCR, the
object being to promote implementation of the principle that men and women
shall have equal rights. The ICESCR was considered as the weakest Covenant
due to a fear of judicial intervention in the policies of the executive branch of
government and the fact that it requires state resources and governments to
fulfill their socio economic obligations and that too it provided only for
progressive realization depending on the resources of the concerned
governments. The CSW had a communications mechanism which allowed it to
hear communications that reveal a consistent pattern of reliably attested
injustice and discriminatory practices meted out against women. The highlight
activity of the CSW was to take into account forms of violence against women
in developing its policy work rather than at engaging and remedying specific
violations of womens rights.
them the exercise and enjoyment of human rights and fundamental freedoms on
39
a basis of equality with men . It has been described as an International Bill of
Rights for women as it sets out detailed information that aids in the recognition
of discrimination against women and the measures that have to be taken in
CEDAW calls on states to change the way public and private entities
and individuals treat women. This is important in relation to domestic violence
because it brings the state into the private realm. It compels the State to
equalize private relationships (i.e., the way individuals treat women and not
only the way the State treats women) and to intervene when discrimination
marks both public and private affairs.
Allowing the states to enter reservation to its own obligations can, and
does impede the extent to which the treaty benefits the individuals in crisis. The
injunction in the Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties that reservations
may not be compatible with the object and purpose of a treaty has not stopped
some states from entering reservations against CEDAWs core provisions.
There is a profound omission in the treaty that the goal of eradication of
violence against women is not expressly stipulated in the treaty itself. The
result is treaty though on its face prohibits the discrimination of women but
member states actively and openly discriminate against their female
43
E.g., sex discriminatory laws in countries such as Nigeria, Mali, Sudan etc.
1985 UN Resolution (n 76), Art.2.
45
protection of victims .The member states were held responsible for preventing
domestic violence and assisting victims. The Resolution invites the member
states to be more sensitized towards the civil and criminal sanctions to be used
against the domestic violence. To be clearer it was an important expression of
minimal government action and invited the member states to introduce civil
and criminal legislation addressing domestic violence, enforce the same,
protect battered family members and punish the offenders.
The resolution identified the special and delicate position of the victim
referred to as specialized assistance and compels states to be respectful of
resolution of conflicts48.
States should oppose the normalization of domestic violence through
social endorsement, recognize the connection between inequality, ignorance
and gender-based harm and address each link in the chain of violence 49.The
resolution raised the tension between intervention on the one hand and the
50
protection of privacy on the other .The legislations on domestic violence that
45
Id., Art.7.
Id., Art.7(b).
Art. 7(f) and 7(g) refers to specialized training and units for those who deal in some capacity
with victims of domestic violence.
48
Id., Art.7(c).
Art. 7(d) (n 76).
50
Id., Art.7(i) (inviting states to make legal remedies to domestic violence more accessible
and, in view of the crimino-genic effects of the phenomenon ,in particular on young victims, to
give due consideration to the interests of society by maintaining a balance between intervention
and the protection of privacy)
are being enacted in different parts of the world are in consonance of the views
prescribed by the Resolution of 1985.
Number 19, which pertains specifically to the issue of violence against women.
Gender- based violence is defined as violence that is directed against a woman
53
because she is a woman or that affects women disproportionately . The General
Recommendation No. 19 can be of particular importance in cases of domestic
violence, as it creates an express link between discrimination and violence, makes
a bold statement about cultural autonomy and prohibits a wide range of violence..
It clarifies that traditional attitudes by which women are regarded as subordinate to
men or as having stereotyped roles perpetuate widespread practices involving
violence or coercion, such as family violence and abuse, forced marriage, dowry
deaths.(etc). Such prejudices and practices may justify gender-based violence as
a form of protection or control of women. The effect of such violence on the
physical and mental integrity of women is to deprive them the equal
enjoyment, exercise and knowledge of human rights and fundamental
freedoms. The Recommendation also brings out how violence against women
as a group inhibits that groups ability to enjoy rights and freedoms. This is a
logical extrapolation of CEDAW to violence against women.
53
General Recommendation 19(No. 20) Art.6. General Recommendations are not formal parts ,
but integral explanatory sources for the interpretation and full implementation of CEDAW.
54
Id., para 23.
55
Id., Art.9.
Report of the World Conference of the United Nations--Decade for Women: Equality,
Development and Peace, Copenhagen, July 1980,U.N. Doc.A/CONF.94/35 (80. IV.3).
57
Supra n.13, p.245.
The first resolution on domestic violence, i.e. Resolution 40/36 of November 29,1985, called
for criminological research on the problem of domestic violence and requested the member
states to implement specific measures to address it; The second resolution i.e. Resolution
45/114 of 1990 urged member states to develop and implement policies, measures and
strategies both within and outside the criminal justice system to respond to the problem of
domestic violence.
G.A Res.48/104 (1993). This landmark document was a result of efforts within the United
Nations Commission on the Status of Women(CSW) and the Economic and Social Council
(ECOSOC).
62
by the Platform for Action (1996-2001) identified Domestic violence as a
62
U.N. Doc. A/Conf.177/20 (1995). The document outlined many specific actions
governments, NGO forum and others should take to confront and combat violence against
women. Its preamble expressed its determination to advance the goal of equality, development
and peace for all women everywhere in the interest of humanity.
The Platform for Action affirmed that violence against women whether occurring in the private
sphere or in the public sphere, is a violation of human rights.
64
Pradeep Kumar Panda- Rights Based Strategies in The Prevention of Domestic Violence;
Working Paper Series 344, ,Centre for Developmental Studies Tvm, Kerala (2003), p.16
The Optional Protocol to CEDAW is the first gender specific international complaints
procedure. As well as putting CEDAW on a par with human rights treaties which have
complaints procedures, it enhances existing mechanisms by specifically incorporating practices
and procedures that have been developed under other complaints procedures. The Committee's
views on communications would amount to what is called jurisprudence. Jurisprudence is the
term used for a body of case law about any particular subject. It is used for guidance in
interpreting laws. Jurisprudence from communications would provide clarification and
guidance for States and for individuals about States' obligations under CEDAW. This has
occurred with the ICCPR in regard to the publication of the Human Rights Committee's views
on the cases that have been brought to it under the Optional Protocol to the ICCPR.
Id.,Art. 2provides a Communications Procedure which allows either individuals or groups of
individuals to submit individual complaints to the Committee. Communications may also be
submitted on behalf of individuals or groups of individuals, with their consent, unless it can be
shown why that consent was not received.
sought help from Hungarian civil68 and criminal courts69 and child protection
authorities, did not receive any assistance or protection from the Hungarian
government. The case involved allegations of severe domestic violence. The
Committee found that Hungary had violated the rights of A.T. under the
Convention, and made recommendations to Hungary that it must act to protect
the safety of the author and act more generally to effect the rights granted under
the Convention. Hungary did not dispute the allegations and indicated that it
would take steps to improve its laws and policy regarding domestic violence.
The CEDAW Committee concluded its opinion with the recommendations that
Hungary was to take immediate and effective measures to guarantee the
physical and mental integrity of the claimant and her family. It was directed
that the claimant be given a safe home for her to live with her children. The
Committee acknowledged the need of the victim to receive appropriate child
support and legal assistance and that she be given reparation
70
The Vienna Intervention Centre against Domestic Violence and the Association for Womens
Access to Justice on behalf of Hakan Goekce, Handan Goekce and Guelue Goekce
(descendants of the deceased) v. Austria Communication No5/2005 UN Doc
CEDAW/C/39/D/5/2005; (Decision)CEDAW Committee (views adopted 6 August 2007)
71
The Vienna Intervention Centre against Domestic Violence and the Association for Womens
Access to Justice on behalf of Banu Akbak,Gulen Khan an Melissa Ozdemir (descendants of
the deceased),alleged victim Fatima: Fatima Yildirim V Austria Communication No.6/2005 UN
Doc CEDAW/C/39/D/6/2005; (Decision) CEDAW Committee (views adopted 1 October 2007)
accountable for failing to exercise due diligence to protect Sahide Goekce. The
committee also stated that the perpetrators rights cannot supersede womens
human rights to life and physical and mental integrity and that the public
prosecutor should not have denied the request of the police to arrest the
72
perpetrator .
Fatima Yildirim v. Austria was a case relating to domestic violence
which ended in the death of the victim at the hands of her husband. The
petitioners argued that the state party had failed to take appropriate measures to
protect Fatma Yildrims right to life and personal security as a victim of
domestic violence. Poor communication between the police and the Public
prosecutor did not adequately allow the prosecutor to assess the danger posed
by Fatimas husband. There was a lack of due diligence since the criminal
justice system, particularly prosecutors, considered domestic violence as a
minor offence. Hence criminal law was not applied to such violent behavior
because law enforcement authorities did not take the danger seriously. The
committee found that Fatima had made positive and determined efforts to save
her life and failure to detain her husband was considered to be a breach of the
State Partys due diligence obligation to protect Fatima. Once again, the
committee held that a perpetrators basic rights, such as the presumption of
innocence, private and family life, right to personal freedom cannot supersede
73
womens human rights to life and to physical and mental integrity .
72
http://www.karat.org/op_cedaw/cases.html.Last visited on 17th April ,2012 For a detailed
discussion see supra n.13.
Ibid.
sphere between individuals who are related through blood or intimacy 74.This
widens the scope of the Resolution as the domestic violence is identified as a
public concern and attempts to embrace violence that occurs in all manner of
intimate contexts, and not solely restricted within marital relationships. Within
the concept of domestic violence, the Resolution includes physical,
psychological, sexual and economic harm and importantly reference is made to
the isolation of the victim, all of which results in imminent harm to the safety,
Cairo. The major focus of the conference was the right to health including
reproductive choices for women.
79
Preliminary Report of the Special Rapporteur on Violence against Women to the Commission
on Human Rights E/CN.4/1995/42 (1994), paras. 99-107.
80
A Framework for Model Legislation on Domestic Violence, Report of the Special Rapporteur
on Violence Against Women, its causes and consequences, Ms. Radhika Coomaraswamy,
submitted in accordance with Commission on Human Rights Resolution
1995/85,E/CN.4/1996/53/Add.2,February 2 nd,1996.
violence against household workers and attempts to commit such acts shall be
termed as domestic violence.
Support programmes that meet the specific needs of victims of abuse and
their families
Provide for and train counsellors to support police, judges and the victims
of domestic violence and to rehabilitate perpetrators of domestic
violence,
81
E/CN.4/1996/53/Add.2 A framework for model legislation on domestic violence. Report of
the Special Rapporteur on violence against women, its causes and consequences, Ms.
RadhikaCoomaraswamy, submitted in accordance with Commission on Human Rights
resolution 1995/85-Domestic Violence Legislation and its Implementation-An analysis for
ASEAN countries based on international standards and good practices-http://cedaw-
seasia.org/docs/DomesticViolenceLegislation.pdf. Last visited on 12/7/2013
The international legal and policy framework outlined above has been
accompanied by the adoption of various legal and policy frameworks at the
regional level. The Inter-American Convention on the Prevention, Punishment and
Eradication of Violence against Women, 1994 otherwise known as the Convention
of Belm do Par, is the first legally binding only international Convention
directed solely at eliminating violence against women. It recognizes that every
woman has the right to be free from violence in both public and private spheres. It
refers to physical, sexual and psychological violence that occurs within the family
or the domestic unit or within any other interpersonal relationship, whether or not
the perpetrator shares or has shared the same residence with the woman, including,
82
among others, rape, battery and sexual abuse .
European System
The European Parliament and Council in 2007 established the Daphne III
Programme, as specific programme to prevent and combat violence against
children, young people and women and to protect victims and groups at risk as part
of the General programme Fundamental Rights and Justice. In 2007the European
Council issued a recommendation on the prevention of injury and the promotion of
safety, calling on member states to take measures to prevent injuries, including
those caused by international violence, particularly domestic violence against
84
women and children .The European Court of Human Rights has made some of
the more progressive decisions vis--vis state responsibility for harm committed
by private actors which will be described later in the chapter.
One of the most recent developments in the area of human rights law
and domestic violence is the adoption by the Committee of Ministers of the
Council of Europe of the Convention on Preventing and Combating Violence
against Women and Domestic Violence in April 2011. The Convention was
opened for signature in Istanbul on 11 May 2011 and was signed by 13 states.
The Convention defines domestic violence shall mean all acts of physical,
sexual, psychological or economic violence that occur within the family or
domestic unit or between former or current spouses or partners, whether or not
85
the perpetrator shares or has shared the same residence with the victim . The
convention is the first legally binding instrument in the region that creates a
comprehensive legal framework to combat violence against women through
prevention, protection, prosecution, and victim support. It defines and
criminalizes multiple forms of violence against women: physical, sexual and
psychological violence, as well as forced marriage and female genital
mutilation. The treaty also establishes an international group of independent
experts to monitor its implementation at the national level. The provisions of
Council Recommendation of 31 May 2007 on the Prevention of injury and the Promotion of
Safety (2007/C 164/01)
85
Article .3(b) Definitions.
86
Case 4,Inter-Am.C.H.R.,OAS/ser.C (1988)
Further the Court added that where human rights violations by private parties
are not seriously investigated, the parties were to be taken as, aided by the
government making the state responsible under international law. This situation
can be made equally applicable in cases where domestic violence is perpetrated
by a single individual and who is not represented by the governmental power.
The need to review and revise existing laws and policy to eliminate
discrimination against women was addressed by the Inter-American
Commission on Human Rights in the case of Maria Mamerita Mestanza
89
Chvez v. Peru which dealt with forced sterilization.
The European Court of Human Rights (ECHR) has been responsible for
passing a number of landmark statutes in cases of domestic violence. One of its
87
Maria da Penhav.Brazil, Case 12.051, Report No. 54/01, OEA/Ser.L/V/II.111 Doc. 20 rev. at
704 (2000).
88
The Brazilian Maria da Penha Law 2006, Art. 5
89
Maria MameritaMestanza Chavez v. Peru, Inter-American Commission on Human Rights,
Petition 12.191, Report No. 71/03, 2003.
90
earliest judgements, passed in 1979 in the case of Airey v. Ireland , pertained
to the responsibility of states to abide by the Convention for the Protection of
Human Rights and Fundamental Freedoms. In this case, the petitioner sought to
dissolve her marriage on the grounds of her husbands alleged physical and
mental cruelty to her and their children. However, due to the prohibitively high
costs of seeking a judicial separation order, she was unable to find a lawyer
willing to act on her behalf.
The substance of Aireys complaint is not that the State has acted,
but that it has failed to act not having been put in a position in
which she could apply to the high courtshe was unable to seek
recognition in law of her de facto separation from her husband.
Therefore, the court found that Ireland had violated Aireys rights by
failing to provide her with a means of accessing the nations legal system and
91
had thus breached the right to access courts and respect for family life
Domestic violence constitutes a clear violation of several of the rights
contained in the European Convention on Human Rights; it was not until 2007
that the European Court of Human Rights dealt substantively with a case
92
involving this issue. In Bevacqua and S. v. Bulgaria the appellant filed for
divorce and custody after enduring years of domestic violence, but Bulgarian
authorities were exceptionally slow in processing the case. As a result of this
bureaucratic incompetence, the appellant and her son lived in constant fear of
harassment by the husband over the course of the proceedings. The decision,
issued by the European Court of Human Rights in 2008, found that, in the
specific circumstances of this case, Bulgaria had violated its obligations under
Article 8 of the Convention for the Protection of Human Rights and
90
Airey v. Ireland (European Court of Human Rights, Application no. 6289/73).
European Convention on Human Rights Convention Articles. 6 and 8.
92
European Court of Human Rights Application no.71127/01.
93
M C v. Bulgaria, European Court of Human Rights 39272/98, 4 December 2003.
94.Application No.33401/02ECHR 9 June 2009; Facts of the case was brought by Nahide
Opuz who with her mother suffered years of brutal domestic violence at the hands of her
husband. Despite their complaints the police and prosecuting authorities did not adequately
protect the women, and ultimately Ms. Opuzs mother was killed by him.
inhuman or degrading treatment. The Court concluded that there had been a
violation of article 3. It reads:
Lee Hasselbacher, State Obligations Regarding Domestic Violence: The European Court of
Human Rights, Due Diligence, And International Legal Minimums of Protection, Vol 8, Issue
Northwestern University Journal of International Human Rights, 215 (Spring 2010).
Jessica Gonzales v. United States, Petition No. 1490-05, Inter-Am. C.H.R., Report No.
52/07,OEA/Ser.L./V/II.128, doc. 19 (2007)
A restraining order can include provisions restricting contact; prohibiting abusive behavior;
determining child custody and visitation issues; mandating offender counseling; and even
forbidding firearm possession.
against her ex-husband. The case went to the U.S. Supreme Court, where, in
2005, the Court ruled that Gonzales did not had a constitutional right to
protection, and that the polices failure to enforce her protection order was not
unconstitutional. Gonzales then took her case to the IACHR, alleging the U.S.
violated her human rights. The petitioners alleged that the American
Declaration imposes a duty on State parties to adopt measures to respect and
ensure the full and free exercise of the human rights enumerated therein; a duty
which under certain circumstances requires State action to prevent and respond
to the conduct of private persons. They furthermore invoked the due diligence
principle to interpret the scope of State obligations under the American
Declaration in cases of violence against women; obligations they consider the
State failed to discharge in this case.
The State rejected the arguments presented by the parties related to the
American Declaration and the applicability of the due diligence principle to the
facts of this case by claiming that: a) the American Declaration is a nonbinding
instrument and its provisions are aspirational, b) that the American Declaration
is devoid of any provision that imposes an affirmative duty on States to take
action to prevent the commission of crimes by private actors, and that b) even
though the due diligence principle has found expression in several international
instruments related to the problem of violence against women, its content is
still unclear. The Commission considered that the issuance of a restraining
order signals a States recognition of risk that the beneficiaries would suffer
harm from domestic violence on the part of the restrained party, and need State
protection. This recognition is typically the product of a determination from a
judicial authority that a beneficiary a woman, her children and/or other
family members will suffer harm without police protection. It is a key
component in determining whether the State authorities should have known
that the victims were in a situation of imminent risk of domestic violence upon
breach of the terms of the order.
100
American Declaration of Rights and Duties of Man, Art. I. Every human being has the right
to life, liberty and the security of his person. Petitioners contention was that the States duty to
protect these victims from domestic violence was of broad reach, also implicating their right to
life and their right to special protection under Articles I and VII of the American Declaration,
given the factual circumstances of this case.
101
Id., Art. II. All persons are equal before the law and have the rights and duties established in
this Declaration, without distinction as to race, sex, language, creed or any other factor. The
petitioners contended that the States failure to adequately respond to Jessica Lenahans calls
regarding the restraining order, to conduct an investigation into the death of Leslie, Katheryn
and Rebecca Gonzales, and to offer her an appropriate remedy for the police failure to enforce
this order, all constituted acts of discrimination and breaches to their right to equality before the
law and non-discrimination under Article II of the American Declaration.
Id., Art. VII. All women, during pregnancy and the nursing period, and all children have the right to
special protection, care and aid.
103
Id., Art. XVIII. Every person may resort to the courts to ensure respect for his legal rights.
There should likewise be available to him a simple, brief procedure whereby the courts will
protect him from acts of authority that, to his prejudice, violate any fundamental constitutional
rights. This right is similar in scope to the right to judicial protection and guarantees contained
in Article 25 of the American Convention on Human Rights, which is understood to
encompass: the right of every individual to go to a tribunal when any of his or her rights have
been violated; to obtain a judicial investigation conducted by a competent, impartial and
independent tribunal that establishes whether or not a violation has taken place; and the
corresponding right to obtain reparations for the harm suffered
and political framework addresses and how the public perceives violence
104
against women .
Some national courts have endeavored and emphasized the idea of
supporting the interference of law enforcement officials in cases of domestic
107
Domestic Violence: Best Practices for Law Enforcement Response -A Model Policy Manual
Prepared Under the Violence Against Women Act North Carolina Governors Crime
Commission Violence Against Women Committee January 1998prepared by The Violence
Against Women Committee of the Governors Crime Commissionviewed
inwww.ncgccd.org/pubs/dvproto.pdf. Last visited on 1st January, 2013.
108
219 F.3d 1018 (9th Cir. 2000) United States, U.S. Court of Appeals for the Ninth Circuit,
2000.
109
In the South African case of S. v. Bayoli and Ors, the respondent
argued that existing legislation on domestic violence was unconstitutional since
it placed the burden of disproving guilt upon the shoulders of the accused. In
this particular case, the respondent was punished for violating an order of
protection based solely on his wifes testimony; he appealed this decision on
the grounds that the state had not proved his guilt beyond reasonable doubt.
While the eventual judgement defended the value of presumption of innocence,
the court also found that in cases of domestic violence fairness to the
complainant required that the enquiry proceedings be speedy and dispense with
the normal process of charge and plea.
India acceded to the ICESCR and the ICCPR in 1979. India is a party to
both ICCPR and ICESCR and is therefore bound to respect and implement the
standards set by the same. The International Covenant on Civil and Political
Rights (ICCPR) has the following provisions that are relevant in the context of
domestic violence: equal rights of men and w omen to the enjoyment of all
civil and political rights set forth in it; inherent right to life, and right against
arbitrary deprivation of life; equality before the law and equal protection of the
law; prohibition of discrimination on grounds including sex; the right not to be
subjected to torture or cruel, inhuman and degrading treatment or punishment;
the right to liberty and security of person; the right to hold opinions without
interference; equality of rights and responsibilities of spouses as to marriage,
during marriage and at its dissolution.
The same right freely to choose a spouse and to enter into marriage only
with their free and full consent;
The same rights and responsibilities during marriage and at its dissolution
114
Reservation: With regard to Article 29 of the Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of
Discrimination Against Women, the Government of the Republic of India declares that it does
not consider itself bound by paragraph 1 relating to arbitration agreements with state parties in
matters of interpretation of provisions of CEDAW.
The same rights to decide freely and responsibly on the number and
spacing of their children and to have access to the information,
education and means to enable them to exercise these rights;
The same rights and responsibilities with regard to guardianship, ward ship,
trusteeship and adoption of children, or similar institutions where these
concepts exist in national legislation; in all cases the interests of the
children shall be paramount;
The same personal rights as husband and wife, including the right to choose
a family name, a profession and an occupation; and
The same rights for both spouses in respect of the ownership, acquisition,
management, administration, enjoyment and disposition of property,
115
whether free of charge or for a valuable consideration.
By entering reservations in these two aspects, the Government of the
Republic of India reserves with itself and acknowledges the peculiar socio
cultural patterns existing in India and follows policy non-interference in the
personal affairs of any Community without its initiative and consent. This
reservation was entered into by Indian Government upon the sole satisfaction
of the fact that any upheaval of existing socio cultural patterns in the societal
fabric is likely to overthrow the whole cultural heritage upon which the Indian
civilization thrives. This reservation made by the Government of India sends
out the message that the existing socio cultural patterns are unique to India and
are to be preserved. The difficulty of enactment of a Uniform Civil Procedure
Code for all the communities in India is the best exemplification of the
consequence faced in any attempt to up root the existing cultural settings. The
115
http://www.un.org/womenwatch/daw/cedaw/text/econvention.html. Last visited on 22/nd
December 2012.
Conclusion
116
A law on domestic violence enacted by the Indian state sends out a clear message that
domestic violence will not be tolerated and that it is both a crime and a civil wrong. However,
enacting a law alone is not enough. It should be supported by condemnation of domestic
violence from important people in power when a violation takes place
117
This would mean that the government is obliged to create an environment where women can
enjoy secure and peaceful existence within their homes. In its obligation to fulfill, the state has
a duty to provide counseling centres, make shelter homes available, raise awareness among key
players such as the police, medical professional and members of judicial services and take
efforts to change the power relations and attitudes that are some of the root causes for domestic
violence.
118
In the case of domestic violence, the obligation to protect requires the government to
appoint, register and allocate funds for different agencies set up under the domestic violence
law and to provide them with necessary facilities for their proper functioning.
There appears to have no foundational philosophy laid down though neither the
international human rights instruments nor by the decisions laid by Courts that
can be made applicable to the familial relations existing within four walls of
the home. An examination of national legal framework on domestic violence
against women becomes imperative to determine the national responses to the
International mandates on the issue. Those issues are addressed in Chapters
five and six of the thesis respectively.
.. ..
Chapte
r4
DOMESTIC VIOLENCE LEGISLATION AND
ITS IMPLEMENTATION IN USA AND UK
The study in the two jurisdictions is categorized into five categories for
easy understanding of the topic
How is the concept of domestic violence defined and what are the
relationships included?
See State v. Black 60 N.C.262, (Win.1864)wherein, Pearson C.J., held that husband is
responsible for the cts of his wife, and he is required to govern his household ,and for that
purpose ,the law permits him to use towards his wife such a degree of force, as is necessary to
control an unruly temper, and make her behave herself; and unless some permanent injury be
inflicted, or there be an excess of violence or such a degree of cruelty as shown that it is
inflicted to gratify his own bad passions, the law will not invade the domestic forum, or go
behind the curtain. It prefers to leave the parties to themselves, as the best mode of inducing
them to make the matter up and live together as man and wife should.
1 Miss. 156 (1824) (U.S. Commission on Civil Rights, 1982).
This decision reinstated the belief that the law should not disturb that role: Let the husband be
permitted to exercise the right of moderate chastisement, in cases of great emergency, and use
salutary restraints in every case of misbehaviour, without being subjected to vexatious
prosecutions, resulting in the mutual discredit and shame of all parties concerned.
See for details in Developments in the Law Legal Responses to Domestic Violence, 78
Harv.L.R. 1499 (1993) See for a detailed discussion, Diane Mitsch Bush, Womens
1970s therefore had the goals of improving police, prosecutor and criminal
court response to battered wives, creating or enhancing civil legal remedies for
battered wives and establishing refuges for battered women and their children.
Movements and State Police Reform Aimed at Domestic Violence against Women-A
Comparison of the consequences of Movement mobilization in the U.S A and India , 6 (4)
Gender and Society 599(1992).
U.S. Dept of Justice, Office on Violence Against Women, http://www.ovw.usdoj.gov/ovw-
fs.html. Last visited on 7th December 2008
relationship, or who have a child in common, whether or not they have ever
6
lived together .
Generally, the federal law recognizes an intimate partner as a spouse, a
former spouse, a person who shares a child in common with the victim, or a
person who cohabits or has cohabited with the victim 7. The original Violence
Against Women Act of 1994 was restricted to only married and co-habiting
couples But the 2000 reauthorization of the Violence Against Women Act
broadened the definition to encompass dating couples. This notion is now
6
http://www.childwelfare.gov/systemwide/lawspolicies/statutes/defdomvio.cfm. Last visited
on 20 th February 2012
According to the VAWA Act, a domestic violence misdemeanor is one in which someone is
convicted for a crime "committed by an intimate partner, parent, or guardian of the victim that
required the use or attempted use of physical force or the threatened use of a deadly weapon"
(s. 922 (g)[9])
In Rhode Island, for example, persons who are or have been in a substantive dating or
engagement relationship within the past one year are considered to be governed by the states
domestic abuse statute.
Under Colorado law, for example, the civil statute states: Domestic abuse means any act or
threatened act of violence that is committed by any person against another person to whom the
actor is currently or was formerly related, or with whom the actor is living or has lived in the
same domicile, or with whom the actor is involved or has been involved in an intimate
relationship.
42 U.S.C. 13925(a)(6).
Different interpretations to manifestations of violence is adopted in different states. In only five
statesConnecticut, Kansas, Idaho, Nebraska, and South Carolinado statutes define
domestic violence simply in terms of overt actions that can be objectively proven or refuted in
a court of law. In the other states, the concept of domestic violence has become broader. In
Hawaii, the statute requires the psychological abuse to be extreme. The law reads: extreme
psychological abuse means an intentional or knowing course of conduct directed at an
individual that seriously alarms or disturbs consistently or continually bothers the individual,
and that serves no legitimate purpose; provided that such course of conduct would cause a
reasonable person to suffer extreme emotional distress. The Michigan statute states:
Harassment means conduct directed toward a victim that includes, but is not limited to,
repeated or continuing unconsented contact that would cause a reasonable individual to suffer
emotional distress and that actually causes the victim to suffer emotional distress. In
Oklahoma, causing mere annoyance to the partner can be included under the term harassment.
Special Report on Expanding Definitions of Domestic Violence by Stop Abusive and Violent
Environments, November 2010 http://www.saveservices.org/downloads/SAVE-Expanding-
Definitions-of-DV.pdf. Last visited on 21st February 2012.
13
primary victims of stalking and men are the primary perpetrators .Stalking
when it happens between intimate partners creates a strong link with domestic
violence against women. Stalking in most jurisdictions is being addressed as an
integral component of an overall strategy to handle domestic violence cases.
The first stage of law on domestic violence goes back to the civil
protection order, first adopted in 1976, within thirteen years, all 50 states and
the District of Columbia passed similar legislation. Initially, in most statutes
only married people or individuals living in a committed relationship were
eligible to petition for relief.
In the United States the laws that deal with domestic violence may be
classified under both Criminal law and Tort law, and certain aspects overlap
with Family law. Domestic violence cases are treated as criminal offences and
at times it has civil remedies also. Criminal offenses may be classified as
felonies or as misdemeanors, although most domestic violence crime is charged
14
and prosecuted as a misdemeanor . All states, territories, and the District of
Columbia have statutory provisions for civil protection orders. These statutes
provide processes for domestic violence victims to seek relief from domestic
15
violence directly from the court and outside the criminal justice system .
A majority of the states have adopted statutes requiring courts to consider
13
https://www.ncjrs.gov/pdffiles1/ovw/172204.pdf. Last visited on 13th May 2012
In some statutory schemes, subsequent misdemeanor offenses may become enhanced to felony
status. In many state criminal codes, domestic violence crimes are addressed in separate code
sections (e.g., Alabama) and include specific definitions of what behaviors and relationships
constitute domestic violence. In many states, the violation of a civil protection order
(restraining order) is a misdemeanor crime. All states and the District of Columbia have
separate stalking statutes (National Center for Victims of Crime, Stalking Resource Center). In
some states (e.g., Pennsylvania), domestic violence crimes are included in general criminal
code provisions (e.g., assault, aggravated assault, sexual assault, rape, kidnapping, theft,
burglary, trespassing).
Although the actions brought under civil protection statutes are not criminal matters, violations
of protection orders are criminal offenses in many states and the existence of a protection order
against an offender raises several issues for the supervision of that offender.
Washington State if the court concludes that a parent has engaged in child abuse or
domestic violence, it is precluded from awarding joint legal custody and it may
16
limit unsupervised residential time of the offending parent with the child .
Prior to the adoption of these provisions, custody judges routinely concluded that the abuse of
a parent by the other was irrelevant in custody proceedings; that violence toward a
spouse/partner had nothing to do with one's ability to adequately parent
In some statutory schemes, subsequent misdemeanor offenses may become enhanced to felony
status. In many state criminal codes, domestic violence crimes are addressed in separate code
sections (e.g., Alabama) and include specific definitions of what behaviors and relationships
constitute domestic violence. In many states, the violation of a civil protection order
(restraining order) is a misdemeanor crime. All states and the District of Columbia have
separate stalking statutes (National Center for Victims of Crime, Stalking Resource Center). In
some states (e.g., Pennsylvania), domestic violence crimes are included in general criminal
code provisions (e.g., assault, aggravated assault, sexual assault, rape, kidnapping, theft,
burglary, trespassing).
Although the actions brought under civil protection statutes are not criminal matters, violations
of protection orders are criminal offenses in many states and the existence of a protection order
against an offender raises several issues for the supervision of that offender.
19
MajoryD.Fields, Rape and Domestic Violence Legislation: Following or Leading Public
Opinion in Shimon Scetreet (Ed.),Women In Law, Hebrew University of Jerusalem, Kluwer
Law International (1998), pp. 365-377.
distress, and fraud, among others. Perceptions about domestic violence 20 are
gradually changing and the inter-spousal immunity doctrine has been abolished
in all but two states, providing todays domestic violence victims with a range
of potential tort causes of action. Assault and battery and infliction of
emotional distress claims against perpetrators constitute the majority of
domestic-violence related torts. The latter, which is recognised in a number of
states, is particularly useful where the abuse alleged is non-violent. In cases of
negligent infliction of emotional distress, many jurisdictions require that the
victim exhibit physical manifestations of emotional distress. Most jurisdictions
do not have a similar requirement for cases alleging reckless or intentional
infliction of emotional distress.
Creation of Battered Woman syndrome as a civil tort for domestic
violence victims was decided in the New Jersey Case Giovine v. Giovine in
1995.This was the first case in U.S.A to recognize that separate acts of assault
and battery related to domestic violence consisted of a continuous tort that tolls
21
the statute of limitation until the tortuous conduct desists.
The Court has laid down the elements of a battered womans syndrome
cause of action.
Involvement in a marital like intimate relationship;
Physical or psychological abuse perpetrated by the dominant partner to the
relationship over an extended period of time;
In the past, a legal doctrine known as inter-spousal immunity, combined with misguided
perceptions of domestic violence as being a private matter, limited a womans ability to obtain
compensation for abuse committed by a spouse.
Statute of Limitation for most torts of assault and battery was only few years.
The above stated abuse has caused recurring physical and psychological
injury over the course of relationship; and
A past and present inability to take any action to improve or alter the
22
situation unilaterally .
The inability referred is the complete helplessness and mental
incapacitation of the abused. This situation is in consonance with the learned
helplessness theory as a causative theory behind the perpetration of domestic
violence against women. The impact of this decision was to provide the
domestic violence victims the legal vehicle to initiate a civil tort. Tortuous
conduct giving rise to a mental condition is thus considered a continuous tort.
This sends out the message that domestic violence torts are to be separately
treated.
Court cases marked the first attempts to challenge and change police
Stanley B.Yeldell, Battered Womens Syndrome :Civil Remedies for the Victims of United
States of America in P. Madhava Soma Sundaram, K. Jaishankar and S. Ramdass (Eds.),
Crime Victims and Justice-An Introduction to Restorative Principles, Serials Publication, New
Delhi (2008), p.339
See for more details, Diane Mitsch Bush, Womens Movements and State Police Reform
Aimed at Domestic Violence against Women-A Comparison of the consequences of Movement
mobilization in the U.S and India, 6 (4)Gender and Society 594 (1992).
The police should arrest domestic violence perpetrators when probable cause for misdemeanor
violence exists, even if the violence does not occur in the officers presence and even if the
victim does not desire prosecution. The proponent of mandatory arrest policies and no- drop
prosecution stress that domestic violence is a public harm in which the State should be
involved. The psychological state of learned helplessness(theory referred to in the first chapter
of this thesis while explaining theories that are causative factors to domestic violence ),the
repetitive Nature and cyclical nature of domestic violence and threats perpetrated against the
children are the driving factors behind such strategic interventions.
Roberta L. Valente, Barbara J. Hart ,Seema Zeya and Mary Malefyt, The Violence Against
Women Act of 1994 The Federal Commitment to Ending Domestic Violence, Sexual Assault,
Stalking and Gender-Based Crimes of Violence in Clire M. Renzetti Jeffrey L. Edleson,
Raquel Kennedy Bergen(Eds.), Source Book on Violence Against Women; International
Educational and Professional Publishers Thousand Oaks London, Sage Publications New Delhi
(2001),p.304
Advantages of civil protection order statutes areas follows: Protection order statutes are
designed to allow victims to proceed on their own, without an attorney, and in some cases (e.g.,
state level precipitated a great change in social attitudes, In many states for the
first time there was a legal recognition that certain patterns of action engaged in
by a spouse or other intimate partner, including physical violence, sexual
assault, financial deprivation, threats, stalking, and harassment constituted a
27
prohibited activity called domestic violence . These orders which are in the
nature of injunctions directed abusive spouses to cease beating and threatening
their spouses and children, order the respondent to stay away from the
petitioner, her workplace or school and the children and their schools, not
contact her, move out of the petitioners residence, follow custody and
visitation orders, and pay child support if children are involved. Child custody
may be awarded and visitation prohibited or limited to supervised settings to
assure the safety of the children as well as their mother. Abusive spouses may
be ordered to pay the medical bills and legal fees incurred by the abused
spouse. This relief is available on an immediate, temporary basis prior to the
time set for a full hearing and before notice is given to the accused spouse28.
An order in the nature of temporary restraining order could be granted
by the court on request by the battered spouse. A victim who is threatened with
imminent harm or has already been harmed by the abuser and/or already has an
order of protection against the abuser has no other legal remedy than to seek a
restraining order. Violators of such orders are subject to civil contempt as well
as criminal penalties. Like domestic abuse, laws governing these orders are
also enacted on the state level and vary among the different states.
Family Court) without the involvement of the criminal justice system. The procedures for
obtaining an order and the types of orders vary, and may include emergency orders, temporary
orders, and final or permanent orders. Orders issued through a civil process can provide critical
relief for domestic violence victims. Civil protection orders can be obtained relatively quickly,
providing a wide range of relief needed to support distance, protection, and independence from
an abuser as well as providing an alternative to the criminal justice system. For more details
refer Cheryl Thomas, Domestic Violence in Kelly. D Askin and Dorean M.Koeing (Eds.),
1Women and International Human Rights Law 235 (1999), Transnational Publishers,
Inc.Ardsley, New York.
Supra n. 21 at p.283.
Supra n. 18 at p.376.
Protection orders are criticized as having soft approach to women battering cases as it prevents
the future conduct and has little enforcement effect with no effective sanctions. See Supra n. 4
at p.1511.
The Violence Against Women Act of 1994 (VAWA) is a United States federal law. The
enactment of the VAWA in 1994 focused national attention on domestic violence and its
detrimental effects on families, business, and society. The Act also led to the infusion of large
sums of money into the nations court systems, law enforcement, and communities to improve
access to justice and services for domestic violence victims and to increase batterer and system
accountability These efforts included the development of specialized judicial processes for
domestic violence. It was passed as Title IV, sec. 40001-40703 of the Violent Crime Control
and Law Enforcement Act of 1994 HR 3355 and signed as Public Law 103-322 by President
Bill Clinton on September 13, 1994.
31
Pub.L. No. 103-322, Tit. IV, 108 Stat. 1796 (1994).
32
Pub.L. No. 106-386, 114 Stat. 1464 (2000). 33Pub.L.
No. 109-162, 119 Stat. 2960 (2005).
health community, social service agencies, community leaders, and the private
34
sector. A federal domestic violence victim has the following rights
The right to be treated with fairness and with respect for the victim's
dignity and privacy;
The right to be present at all public court proceedings related to the offense,
unless the court determines that testimony by the victim would be
materially affected if the victim heard other testimony at the trial;
The right to confer with the attorney for the Government in the case;
Of the many portions of VAWA, five sections have the potential for
having the greatest impact on improving the handling of crimes of violence
against women in USA. These include:
The full faith and credit provision 35means if one court issues a
protection order, all other states, territories, and tribes must enforce it as
36
vigorously and completely as they would enforce their own orders . States
have adopted legislation to make sure the basic rules of Full Faith and Credit
provision are followed. This is equally applicable to protection orders issued
37
during criminal proceedings. The interstate crimes of domestic violence
suggests that States and territories only have the authority to address crimes
committed completely within their borders. Congress crafted three new federal
42 U.S.C. S. 10606(b).
(18U.S.C Ss. 2265,2266).
Supra n. 18, p.286.
(18 U.S.C. Ss. 2261,2262).
38
crimes Interstate Travel to commit Domestic Violence , Interstate Violation of
39 40
a Protection Order and Interstate Stalking as one of the crimes related to
41
domestic violence envisaged under the VAWA is that of Stalking . This new
law makes it a federal crime to cross a state line or to travel within areas of
special federal jurisdiction with the intent to injure or harass any person if,
during the course of or as a result of the travel, the offender place as the person
or a member of the persons immediate family in treasonable fear of death or
serious bodily injury. There is no requirement under this statute that actual
42
bodily harm occur for a conviction to result . An abuser can no longer use the
confusion of multiple jurisdictions to evade justice.
VAWA has effectively addressed the problems faced by battered
immigrant women under the user friendly provisions of the Immigration and
Naturalization Service and has sought to reduce the barriers to permanent
residency and citizenship. For the first time for many of these women, their
immigration decisions and processes are under their own control, not subject to
43
the harassing whims of the abusive spouse . VAWA also resulted in changes to
the Immigration and Nationality Act so that now it is possible for abused
spouses, children, and parents of U.S. citizens or lawful permanent residents
(green card holders) to petition on their own (self-petition) for lawful
[18 U.S.C. S. 2261(a) (1)-(2)]An abuser may commit a crime of interstate domestic violence
when he decides intentionally to travel from one state, tribal land or territory to another to
threaten or harm a spouse or an intimate partner. An abuser may also commit this crime be
forcing a spouse or intimate partner to cross a state, tribal or territorial line to threaten or harm
that spouse or intimate partner. In both cases the abuser must cause bodily injury to the victim.
This crime covers actions that take place when a protection order has not been issued. An
abuser can no longer evade prosecution just because it is unclear in which state, tribe or
territory the harm to the victim began.
[18 U.S.C.Ss.2262(a)(1)-(2); This section recognizes the crime of travelling across a state,
territorial or tribal border with the intent to violate a protection order; when the violation of the
order occurs, the crime is complete. Only violations of certain provisions within a protection
order can trigger the application of this law-specifically behavior constituting threats of
violence, repeated harassment or bodily injury to the protected persons.
[18U.S.C.S. 2261A].
See for more details, supra n. 18 at p.292.
Supra n. 18, p.293.
For more details, see supra n. 21, p.294-295.
[18 U.S.C.S.922(g)(8)].
[18U.S.C.S.921,et seq.].
18U.S.C.S. 922(g)(1)-(9) Exemption;]Law enforcement and military personnel who are subject
to qualifying protection orders are exempt from this section while on duty. Transfer of firearm
to a second person with full knowledge or has reasonable cause to believe the second person is
subject to one of the types of protection orders covered by this law is also a federal crime.
[18U.S.C.S.922(d)(8)].
(42U.S.C. S.3796hh).
(42U.S.C. S. 3796gg).
(42U.S.C. S. 13971). See for details, supra n. 21, p.297.
Supra n.18, p.297.
States v. Morrison52held that the United States Congress did not have the
authority to enact the civil law remedy in the Violence against Women Act. The
basis of this decision was, inter alia, that gender-motivated crimes of violence
are not economic activity nor do they affect interstate commerce for the
purposes of the commerce clause in the United States Constitution. Of course,
if women are deemed to be on the margins of public life, their abuse would not
constitute a retardation of the economy. Because women are not perceived as
pivotal public or economic players, they do not warrant the same status and
consideration as men by public structures. The United States Supreme Court
revealed that women are not relevant to the public sphere: that violence against
women, and therefore women themselves (as what could be a greater
curtailment of an individuals commercial participation than violence) cannot
and do not fall within the purview of a commercial conversation. This case
further highlights the failure of the domestic legal system to take steps towards
curing private torture. It struck down a portion of the Violence Against Women
Act (the more formal title of which is the Civil Rights Remedies for Gender-
Motivated Violence Act). The act was an attempt by Congress to allow
51
See for details supra n. 21, p.298.Monetary damages was presumed to be necessary to cover
the costs borne by victims of violence against women, including medical and mental health
treatment, job retraining, loss of property and assets and a host of other financial and physical
injuries arising from the offenders commission of crimes of violence.
529 U.S.598 (2000) United States v. Morrison invalidated the section of the Violence Against
Women Act (VAWA) of 1994 that gave victims of gender-motivated violence the right to sue
their attackers in federal court, although program funding remains unaffected.
Another option desperate women have used in response to unchecked violence and abuse is to
sue the police for failing to offer protection, alleging that the police violated their constitutional
rights to liberty and equal protection under the law. The Equal Protection Clause of the
Fourteenth Amendment provides that no state shall deny t any person within its jurisdiction
the equal protection of the laws. This clause prohibits states from arbitrarily classifying
individuals by group membership. If a woman can prove that a police department has a gender
based policy of refusing to arrest men who abuse their wives, she can claim that the policy is
based on gender stereotypes and therefore violates the equal protection laws.
54
Indira Jaisingh, Asmita Basu, Brototi Dutta- Research Paper on Domestic Violence
Legislation and its ImplementationAn Analysis For ASEAN Countries based on International
Standards and Good Practices United Nations Development Fund for Women and Womens
Rights Initiative Lawyers Collective India p.43. See for details available at http://cedaw-
seasia.org/docs/DomesticViolenceLegislation.pdf.Last visited on 20th February,2012
against women, and to report these results to the U.S. Congress. Although
organizations such as the Lawyers Collective and National Commission of
Women have played a monitoring function for the PWDVA, their important
55
http://www.hrln.org/hrln/pdf/intern_work/PWDVA%20Article%20Rakhi%20Lahiri_formatte d
%20by%20Karuna_.pdf. Last visited on 22 nd October,2012.
U.S. Department of Justice, Office on Violence Against Women Special Initiatives, available at:
http://www.ovw.usdoj.gov/pfjci.htm.
Dade Countys Domestic Violence Division hears all criminal misdemeanors involving
domestic violence and petitions for civil protection orders. Dade County addresses domestic
violence from a community-wide perspective and incorporates into the court process referrals
for counseling, batterer intervention programs, and other resources for victims, batterers, and
their families.
Conference of Chief Justices and Conferences of State Court Administrators of America 2000
has equally agreed upon the concept of therapeutic approach and have included the same
approach in drug courts and mental health courts. See for more details, Susan Elley, Changing
Practices: The Specialised Domestic Violence Court Process, 44(2) The Howard Journal
113(2005).
status, top priority cases requiring skilled lawyers71. The therapeutic approach
posits that the legal system can promote the well-being of both survivors and
perpetrators of domestic violence.
This is the opinion collected from the literature review on specialized domestic violence courts.
The three primary benefits of specialization of courts have been identified by American Bar
Association,1996 are the following 1. fostering improved decision making by having experts
decide complex cases 2. reducing backlog of cases in general courts by shifting complex cases
to specialized courts and 3. decreasing the number of judge hours required to process complex
cases by having experts deciding on such issues. Refer for more details to Supra note 53 at
p.121
Scholars have opposed mandatory arrest on many grounds. For more details, see supra n. 4 at
pp.1538,1539
violence, sexual assault and stalking. In the absence of any substantive federal
remedy for failure to protect womens rights, VAWAs role in preventing and
punishing violence against women is limited primarily to making grants to state
and local police and advocacy organizations who seek to implement training or
programming, funding domestic violence service provision and training,
providing immigration relief to non-citizen victims of violence, and
coordinating interstate recognition of protective orders.
73
http://www.hrln.org/hrln/womens-justice-/reports/641-national-consultation-on-the-protection-of-
women-from-domestic-violence-act-2005.html. Last visited on 20/ th February,2012.
74
Supra n. 49 available at http://cedaw-seasia.org/docs/DomesticViolenceLegislation.pdf Last
visited on 20th February, 2012.
Of all the changes created by VAWA, the grant programs had the
greatest impact on social and system responses to domestic violence, sexual
assault and stalking. With its legal authority and financial supports, it has
created a new climate that promotes victim safety, offender accountability, and
a responsive system of justice. Funds are channeled towards sensitivity training
programs for law enforcement, lawyers, the judiciary, and court personnel on
domestic violence issues and in the importance of responding to domestic
violence calls and civil protection order violations, as well as training medical
staff on detecting signs of domestic violence. Funds have also been allocated to
various initiatives helping domestic violence victims receive legal aid, maintain
housing and employment, retain confidentiality, assist rural populations, older
women, immigrant women and children, and women with disabilities in
U.S. Department of Justice, Office on Violence Against Women Facts About VAWA, available
at:http://www.ovw.usdoj.gov/docs/vawa.pdf. Last visited on 20/ th February, 2012.
For advantages of specialized court, see supra n. 53, p.114.
Some states still dont recognize that domestic violence involving pregnant women should be
treated as a violent felony because it also affects the unborn child. Even when domestic
violence involves a pregnant woman, the abuser is often still awarded custody rights after the
child is born because the law does not recognize the abuse against the pregnant woman as
abuse against the unborn child
For more details, see Developments in the Law: Legal Responses to Domestic Violence
Harv.L.Rev.1498 (1993).An opposing argument is given by in favour of mandatory Arrest.
Evan Starke, Mandatory Arrest of Batterers : A Reply to its Critics, in Eve Buzawa &Carl
G.Buzawa (Eds.), Do Arrest and Restraining Orders Work? (1996), pp.115-149.
For more details, see Doughlas E.Beloof & Joel Shapiro , Let the Truth Be Told: Proposed
Hearsay Exceptions to admit Domestic violence Victims Out of Court Statements as
Substantive Evidence.11 Colum. .J. Gender &L.1(2002)
See for details, supra n. 4,pp.1516,1517,1525.
non cooperation added with victim non cooperation has led to the difficulties in
81
dealing with the issue of domestic violence in U.S.A.
Given the legislation social change is not instantaneous. It is a complex
process tha5t can be accelerated by legislation. Given the force of law and the
necessary funding for programs, it is highly possible to attain the goal of
combating domestic violence
For more details see, Maureen McLeod, Victim Noncooperation in the Prosecution of
Domestic Violence 21 Criminology 395 (1983)
With marriage, women were subject to the husbands guardianship. According to 213 of civil
code, the husband was obliged to protect his wife, whereas her duty was to obey. In Roman law,
family, house and courtyard were subordinated to major domus, the man of the house (patria
potestas). He had the unrestricted right to issue corporal punishment to his subordinates (ius vitae
necisque).
83
This is the Government definition of domestic violence agreed in 2004. It is taken from
Policy on Prosecuting cases of Domestic Violence, Crown Prosecution Service,
2005.http://sentencingcouncil.judiciary.gov.uk/docs/web_domestic_violence.pdf. Last visited
on 20th February, 2012
http://www.cps.gov.uk/publications/prosecution/domestic/domv_guidance.html#a01. Last
visited on 12July,2012
The status of women in U.K during 1950s was similar to that of the
85
U.S.A counterparts . Unless there was an indisputable claim divorce as a relief
was dependent on the courts view of her morality. In cases of proved
immorality custody orders could be granted in favour of husbands 86. Obtaining
maintenance payments from the abusive husbands was problematic and
stigmatizing. The issue of domestic violence within the household was only a
private matter. The remedy available between 1945-1970 was a civil remedy to
87
stop the violence, that too only if she had already filed for divorce . No
unified social or medical services nor counseling services were promoted at the
cost of the Government.
Since the 1970s, both the criminal and civil legislation aimed at
supporting and protecting those experiencing domestic violence have been
Proceedings Act 197689 and Domestic Proceedings and Magistrates Court Act
1978 failed to introduce a valuable power of arrest in instances where offenders
committed assault. This lack of the power of arrest coupled with the use of
police discretion provided little protection for women. The lack of power of
arrest, coupled with the use of police discretion, provided little protection for
The common justification was lack of compliance by the wives to their husbands and
traditional idea of rightful authority.
See more details in Gill Hague; Claudia Wilson, The Silenced Pain :Domestic
Violence1945-1970 9(2) Journal of Gender Studies 159 (2000).
This situation changed with the enactment of Domestic Violence and Matrimonial Proceedings
Act 1976.
Amy Musgrove and Nicola Groves, The Domestic Violence, Crime and Victims Act 2004:
Relevant or Removed Legislation? 29 Journal of Social Welfare and Family Law,
234(2007).
The Act empowered county courts to grant restraining orders or injunctions to women
experiencing violence and to exclude one party from the home. Repealed and replaced in 1997
90
women . In the mid 1990s all previous legislations were consolidated under
the auspices of Family Law Act 1996.This Act introduced measures such as
molestation orders, to improve protection under civil law for those
experiencing domestic violence. These included two new remedies: non-
molestation orders and occupation orders. The 1996 Act was significant to the
extent that it recognized physical sexual or psychological molestation or
harassment as having serious detrimental effect upon the health and wellbeing
of the victim but failed to apply to those who have ever co-habited or same sex
couples.
The sanctuary scheme is defined as a possibility for the victim to remain in the accommodation by
setting up additional protection measures (e.g. internal doors, safety glass, smoke alarms as well as
immediate delivery of legal solutions under Family Law Act 1996 etc.)
98
A. Matczak, E. Hatzidimitriadou and J. Lindsay, Review of Domestic Violence Policies in
England and Wales, Kingston University and St Georges, University of London (2011), p. 9.
likely to suffer harm, it must consider harm that a child may suffer not just
99
from domestic violence, but from witnessing it .
The Domestic Violence, Crime and Victims Act 2004 provided a new
focus for the criminal justice system response to domestic violence, aiming to
improve support and protection offered to women and introducing new powers
to enable both police and courts to deal more effectively with offenders 100. The
Domestic Violence National Action Plan contains substantial policy proposals
to improve its functioning. The UK Government has set up a Domestic
Violence Advisory Group in 2005 made up of police officers, lawyers, justices,
social workers and other agencies to ensure a concerted approach in tackling
the problem101
The Act focuses its attention on the criminal justice system and has led
to following developments within its jurisdiction: firstly by making common
assault an arrestable offence.
Ursula Smartt and Helmut Kury, Domestic Violence : Comparative Analysis of German and
UK. Research Finding, 88(5) Social Science Quarterly 1275 (2007).
Domestic Violence, Crime and Victims Act 2004 s.10 of the Act.
101
Supra n. 94, p.1275.
The courts are enabled to impose restraining orders on acquittal for any
offence (or when a conviction has been overturned on appeal) if they consider
it necessary to protect the victim from harassment. This will deal with cases
where the conviction has failed but it is still clear from the evidence that the
victims need protection. A system is put in place to review domestic violence
homicide incidents, drawing in the key agencies to find out what can be done to
put the system right and prevent future deaths. A code of practice 102 that is
binding for all criminal justice agencies, so that all victims receive the support,
protection, information and advice they need is introduced. If in case if they
feel the code has not been adhered to by the criminal justice agencies, victims
can take their case to the Parliamentary Ombudsman. An independent
Commissioner for Victims to promote the interests of victims and witnesses,
encouraging the spread of good practice and reviewing the statutory code is set
up. The victims of mentally disordered offenders are guaranteed the same
rights to information as other victims of serious violent and sexual offences.
The Criminal Injuries Compensation Authority is given the right to recover
from offenders the money it has paid to their victims in compensation. A
surcharge is made payable on criminal convictions and fixed penalty notices
which will contribute to the Victims Fund. A new offence of causing or
allowing the death of a child or vulnerable adult is created. The offence
establishes a new criminal responsibility for members of a household where
they know that a child or vulnerable adult is at significant risk of serious harm.
The Law Commission recommendation for a two-stage court trial to ensure that
high volume crimes like fraud and internet child pornography can be
102
Witnesses and victims of domestic violence appearing in criminal courts can apply for
special measures like being screened off from the rest of the court; giving evidence by live
television links; allowing witnesses to give their evidence in pre-recorded interviews; having
the victims/witnesss name withheld from the press (through CPS application); the public
being asked to leave the courtroom when the victim is giving evidence (sexual offences or
cases involving intimidation);deriving information from the Witness Liaison Officers who act
as a main point of contact etc.
103
punished in full is brought into effect. Specialist Domestic Violence Courts
were introduced to consider only cases of domestic violence and offer tailored
support and advice from trained magistrates and prosecutors.
The first British specialist court was established in 1999 in Leeds. The aim of the Specialist Domestic
Violence Courts is to combine criminal and civil settings in order to deal with domestic abuse more
effectively. They take a multi-agency approach to domestic violence with criminal justice agencies,
magistrates and specialist support services for victims working together in partnership. They aim to have
a clear focus assessing and reducing the risk to victims and supporting victims through the court process.
104
Supra n.79 p.12.
See for details, Gill Hague and Ellen Malos, Inter-agency Approaches to Domestic Violence
and the Role of Social Services 28 Br. J. of Social Wk. 369,386 (1998).
Their responsibilities are serving as a victims primary point of contact, IDVAs normally work with
their clients from the point of crisis to assess the level of risk, discuss the range of suitable options
and develop safety plans. They are pro-active in implementing the plans, which address immediate
safety, including practical steps to protect themselves and their children, as well as longer-term
solutions.
The advisors are based in the Sexual Assault Referral Centres or within voluntary
organisations.
108
Supra n.78, p.14.
Domestic violence policy and strategy cuts across each element of the justice system and the Ministry of
Justice has a broad aim to increase the rate that domestic violence is reported and brought to justice and to
make sure that victims of domestic violence are adequately protected and supported.
They prosecute offences investigated by the police.
HM Courts & Tribunals Service administers courts in England and Wales and provides
administration and support for the Magistrates' courts, County Courts, the Crown Court, the
High Court, and the Court of Appeal. Victims of domestic violence can apply for civil or
criminal remedies.
They are upto produce a system which allows families to reach easy, simple and efficient
agreements which are in the best interests of children whilst protecting children and vulnerable
adults from risk of harm.
An independent agency of the Department of Education, which was established under
provisions of the Criminal Justice and Court Services Act (2000) to safeguard and promote the
welfare of children involved in court proceedings. CAFCASS provides expert independent
advice to courts on the interests of children involved in family proceedings. CAFCASS
114
Supra n.79, p.16.
115
service delivery . The National Action Plan sets out priorities for the Health
Service which can be seen as having four distinct focus like awareness raising
of domestic violence as a public health issue; training and developing the
health service workforce to offer an improved standard of service to those
experiencing domestic violence (e.g. training for health visitors to provide
support to families when they suspect violence against women or children may
be a factor); improving the quality of service provision and finally developing
information and research frameworks.
each Borough117.
The London Domestic Violence Forum, operating in the Borough of
London, has become a model for other boroughs working in the area of inter-
agency cooperation in tackling domestic violence. The London Domestic
Violence Forum consists of various other significant initiatives within its
mandate, and implements the Mayors Second London Domestic Violence
Strategy, launched in 2005. The London Domestic Violence Forum works as
115
Id.,p.17.
116
Id.,p.19.
117
Supra n. 50, p.44.
Id., at p.44.
Supra n. 94, p.1276.
120
Seehttp://www.nordaf.co.uk/public/Editor/assets/Library/SDVC%20Resource%20Manual.
pdf. Last visited on 20th February, 2012:Aims of MARAC envisaged are to share information
to increase the safety, health and well-being of victims adults and their children; to determine
whether the perpetrator poses a significant risk to any particular individual or to the general
community; to construct jointly and implement a risk management plan that provides
professional support to all those at risk and that reduces the risk of harm; to reduce repeat
victimization; to improve agency accountability; to improve support for staff involved in high
risk DV cases. The responsibility to take appropriate actions rests with individual agencies; it is
not transferred to the MARAC. The role of the MARAC is to facilitate, monitor and evaluate
effective information-sharing to enable appropriate actions to be taken to increase public safety.
Amarsanaa Darisuren and Sarah Fortuna(Ed.,) Domestic Violence Legislation and its
Implementation: An analysis for ASEAN Countries based on International Standards and Good
Practices- UNIFEM and Lawyers Collective Womens Rights Initiative, India (2009), p 49.
Supra n. 94,p.1275.
123
Supra n. 70, p.22.
126
awareness raising campaigns and engage in preventive works .The risk
assessment programmes enunciated by U.K is commendable. The experience
of MARAC can be regarded by the victims as a programme for access to
justice. The other side of the argument is that when such conferences are held
the privacy issues of victim may come up. The insensitivity in dealing with the
issue can lead to counterproductive consequences.
Conclusion
Id.,pp.374, 375. E.g., the South Bristol Domestic Violence Forum is running multi-agency training
courses on domestic violence in its own area.
.. ..
Chapte
r5
LEGAL PROTECTION AGAINST DOMESTIC
The Indian Constitution has ensured equal status to all i.e. not only
between men and men, women and women but also between men and
1
women. The constitutionally guaranteed fundamental right to equality before
the law2 and non- discrimination on the ground of sex 3 has received wide
4
judicial interpretations to ensure gender justice to women. In The sphere of
right to equality no uniform judicial approach has been followed by the Indian
judiciary in analyzing the legal position of women. In the early cases, the
courts has employed a differential analysis in classifying between men and
women as a group and in upholding legislations that conferred advantageous
1
Anjani Kant,Women and the Law, A.P.H. Publishing Corporation, New Delhi (1997),p.130
Constitution of India, Part III, Art. 14 confers the equality before the law or the equal
protection of the laws to every person.
Id., Art. 15 (1) prohibits any kind of discrimination on the grounds of religion race, caste, sex
or place of birth.
4
E.g., State of Madras v. Champakom Dorairajan, A.I.R. 1951 S.C. 226;Giani Ram v.
Ramjilal, A.I.R. 1969S.C. 1144;Manshan Ram v. Taj Ram,1980 S.C. 558.
5
Raghuban v. State of Punjab A.I.R. 1972P&H 117;(for the purpose of employment in
prisons.); Sucha Singh v. State of Punjab, A.I.R 1974P&H 162;Nalini Ranjan v. State of Bihar,
A.I.R. 1977 Pat 171;(for deciding the extent of land holding); Shahbad v. Abdullah
,A.I.R.1967,J&K 120;(for serving court summons); Yusuf Abdul Aziz v. State of Bombay, A.I.R.
1954,S.C. 321;Soumitri Vishnu v. Union of India, 1985,Supp S.C.C. 137;(in the matter of
sanctity of marital bed).
6
AIR v Nergesh Mirza 1987 SC 1829; C.B. Muthamma v. Union of India A.I.R. 1979 S.C.
1868; Ammini E.J v. Union of India A.I.R. 1995 Ker 252,268.
The Supreme Court had lamented upon the women folk in the specific
11
Indian cultural context when it opined:
Half of the Indian population too are women. Women have always
been discriminated against and have suffered and are suffering
discrimination in silence. Self- sacrifice and self -denial are their
nobility and fortitude and yet they have been subjected to all
inequities, indignities, inequality and discrimination.
Constitution of India, Part III Art. 15(3) is an enabling provision and empowers the state to
make any special provision for women and children. The reason forwarded for this positive
discrimination to women is that a womens physical structure and the performance of maternal
functions places her to a disadvantage in the struggle for subsistence and her physical well-
being becomes an object of public interest and care in order to preserve the strength and vigour
of the race. This position was upheld in Muller v. Oregon, 52 L.ed.551.In Gita Hariharan v
R.B.I ,(1999) 2S.C.C. 228; Interpretation of the guardianship law in the light of Article 15 of
the Constitution of India by the Supreme Court equated the position of mother to that of the
father in the matter of guardianship. Other cases on protective discrimination are. Dattatraya
Motiram v. State of Bombay, A.I.R. 1953 Bom.842; Cracknell v State of U.P, A.I.R.
1953,All.746;Government of A.P v. P.B. Vijaya Kumar,A.I.R. 1995 S.C. 1648.
Numerous laws have been enacted relating to prohibition of female infanticide, dowry,
exposure of women in advertisements and films, female child marriage, atrocities, molestation ,
abduction etc. Egs. The Dowry Prohibition Act,1961;The Maternity Benefit Act,1961;The
Equal Remuneration Act,1976;Family Courts Act,1984;The Indecent Representation of women
(Prohibition )Act,1986;The Commission of Sati (Prevention)Act,1987; The National
Commission for Women Act,1990. All these legislations have served to bring about the changes
in the position of women in the existing socio cultural set up of the country.
Constitution of India Part III Art. 19 (1)(a) .
Id., Art. 19(1)(g) .
Madhu Kishwar v. State of Bihar, (1996)5 S.C.C. 148. Emphasis added
ILO set up in 1919, aiming at social justice and to promote gender equality,
states that extensive discrimination against women violates the principle of
equality of rights and respect for human dignity. In consonance with the spirit,
the Constitution of India guarantees the right to life and personal liberty. 12
Several judicial interpretations have broadened the scope of right to life and it
means not merely an animal existence but includes within itself the right to live
India.14It was held to be the crudest and sure mode of entirely destroying her
personality, self- confidence and self- respect, and throwing her into deep
emotional crisis. Keeping up with the spirit the Constitution of India prohibits
upholds the spirit of right of a woman to live with human dignity. 22 The 73 rd
and 74 th Amendments to the Constitution of India effected in 1992 provided
for reservation of seats to women in election to the panchayats and
municipalities with a view to enhancing the womens role in the democratic
process. Thus social and individual responsibilities are contemplated in the
Constitution of India in addition to democratic solutions.
Constitution of India, Part IV Art. 38(2) says the state shall. Endeavour to eliminate
inequalities in status, facilities and opportunities not only against individuals but also as against
group of people residing in different areas or engaged in different vocations.Article 39 (a)
provides equally to both men and women the right to adequate means of livelihood; The state
has enacted the Equal Remuneration Act,1976, and the Maternity Benefit Act,1961 to give
effect to Art. 39(d)and Art. 42 respectively.
18
Randhir Singh v. Union of India, A.I.R 1982 S.C. 877;Bhagwan Das v. State of Haryana,
A.I.R. 1987 S.C. 2049.
19
E.g.,Sarala Mudgal v. Union of India, A.I.R 1995 SC 1531 ;( 1995) 3S.C.C. 635; Article 44
directs the state to secure for the citizens a uniform civil code throughout the territory of India.
The court in later cases like Pannalal BansilalPitti v. State of Andhra Pradesh ,(1996) 2S.C.C.
498 ;Lily Thomas v. Union of India, (2000)6S.C.C. 224. etc have acknowledged the difficulties
involved in introducing Uniform Civil Code.
20
E.g., C.M. Mudaliyar v. Idol of Sri S. Swaminathaswami Thirukoil, (1996) 8S.C.C. 525.
Constitution of India, Part IV-A, Art.51 A (e).
22
Noor Mohammed v Mohammed Jijauddin, A.I.R. 1992 M.P.244.
Civil Procedure Code, the Specific Relief Act23, the Law of Torts and the
Family Courts Act.
5.2.1 Domestic violence under the Law of Torts
Tort law, which is based on the concept of injury / harm, is yet another law
that provides remedies to aspects of domestic violence. A tort is any action or
inaction that damages or injures another person. It can be towards the person or
property of another person. Since acts of domestic violence cause harm, they are
considered torts or civil wrongs. Any person can bring a claim for tort action,
irrespective of relationship. Some of the common torts that apply in the domestic
24 25 26 27
violence context are trespass , assault and battery , false imprisonment and
28
negligence . Granting damages and injunctions are the remedies available in tort
cases. Remedies under tort law include monetary compensation / damages and
injunctions that direct a person to do or not to do something.
23
Injunctions can be obtained by applying under sections 37 to 44 of the Specific Relief
Act,1963. Under this provision one can apply for restraining orders from the court restraining
her husband from abusing her physically and mentally and also in cases where one fears that he
will commit abusive and violent acts against the other.
Trespass to the person in the broad term is used to denote various forms of physical and
psychological injury committed upon a person.
Any action that causes a person to fear that a battery will be committed upon him is an assault.
Battery denotes any physical interference with a person.
False imprisonment is the infliction of any unlawful bodily restraint upon a person.
The failure to take proper care is termed negligence. Negligent conduct counts as domestic
violence, when a person fails in his \her legal duty to take care. In the domestic violence
context, ill treatment and particularly harassment for dowry may cause such a tort.
The Family Courts Act, 1984 was enacted with an object of promoting
conciliation in and secure speedy settlement of disputes relating to marriage
and family affairs as it involves serious emotional aspects. The Act makes it
possible for a victim of family violence, to seek matrimonial reliefs without
delay as family courts follow a less formal and more active investigational and
inquisitorial procedure. All family law matters such as marriage, matrimonial
causes, maintenance, custody, education and support of children, settlement of
30
property come within the jurisdiction of the family courts.
The main criticism against the object of the Act is that it places primary
emphasis on the preservation of family in tune with patriarchal culture. The Act
ignores the existing power structure dominating conjugal relation and negates
the vulnerable position of women within the family and society. It does not
take into account the fact that in most cases of marital dispute women opt for
legal recourse when other efforts for conciliation have failed to yield
29
Church v. Church, 1983 N.L.J. 317.
30
Family Courts Act,1984. Explanation to s. 7.
31 .
result . Intense stress on reconciliation has proved to be counter-productive
The Act refuses to recognize the situation of irretrievable breakdown of
marriage. The Act takes resort of conciliation and mediation methods which
can become counter- productive in serious instances of domestic violence
other offences of criminal nature between the spouses 32, inter-spousal tort and
contracts have not been brought under the jurisdiction of family courts. Thus
no matter under the Dowry Prohibition Act, 1961 or under the Indian Penal
Code, 1860 can be tried by a family court. It follows that disputes relating to
violence between spouses will not come under family courts, jurisdiction
33
unless some matrimonial relief, divorce or judicial separation or maintenance
is sought under the petition. Another argument that has been brought out
against the Family Courts is that they tend to place cases of domestic violence
within the field of family disputes. Thus, in the interests of preserving the
family, abuse up to a certain limit is tolerated by women, as a part and parcel of
wear and tear in marital life.
Agnes, Flavia. A Toothless Tiger: A Critique of Family Court, 9 (17) Manushi 66 (1991).
Such as offence under s. 498 A of the Indian Penal Code,1860.
33
Family Courts Act,1984 s. 7 (2) (a).The Family courts have and exercise the jurisdiction
exercisable by a Magistrate of first class under Chapter ix relating to order for maintenance of
wife, children and parents of the Code of Criminal Procedure Code,1973.
34
She was considered a mere chattel . The customs and traditions which
upheld the womanly obligations later got moulded into the personal laws
governing the matrimonial matters of the people in India.
The Hindu Marriage Act 1955 is the first all Indian enactment dealing
with matrimonial causes specifically governing Hindus. The Indian Divorce
Act 1869, the Special Marriage Act 1954, Hindu Marriage Act, 1955 are the
three most important matrimonial causes statutes, in India .Besides these, three
important matrimonial statutes there are other matrimonial statutes in force in
India, namely, Parsi Marriage and Divorce Act, 1936 applicable to the members
of Parsi community, Dissolution of Muslim Marriage Act, 1939, the part of
Muslim Personal Law in force in India and permits Muslim wife to seek
divorce on certain grounds. An analogous provisions of Hindu Adoptions and
Maintenance Act,1956 also reflects the concern of the legislators as to women
35
treated with cruelty from being deprived of shelter and maintenance . All
these Acts prescribe cruelty as one of the grounds for obtaining matrimonial
relief. Cruelty is a ground for divorce as well as judicial separation under all
Suppression of womens status in household and society in the Indian context is detailed
under Chapter Two of this thesis.
Hindu Adoptions and Maintenance Act,1956 s. 18 (2) (b) provides that a Hindu wife is entitled
to live separately from her husband without forfeiting her claim to maintenance if he has
treated her with such cruelty s to cause reasonable apprehension in her mind that it will be
harmful or injurious to live with her husband. s. 18 (2) (g) of the Act also provides that a Hindu
wife is entitled to live separately and claim maintenance if here is any other cause justifying
her living separately. In Subbegowda v. Honnamma ,A.I.R 1984 Kant. 41; it was held that
under this clause wifes claim for maintenance can be sustained on the grounds of acts of
violence which are covered by the cruelty clause substantially but not fully.
Dissolution of Muslim Marriage Act, 1939 s. 2 (viii) states six conditions that constitute cruelty
to wife. Namely, Habitually assaulting the wife or making her life miserable by cruelty of
conduct even if such conduct does not amount to physical ill- treatment; Associating with
woman of ill- repute or leading infamous life; Attempting to force the wife to lead an immoral
life; Disposing of the wifes property or preventing her from exercising her legal rights over it;
Obstructing the wife in the observance of her religion; Ill-treatment ,not in accordance with the
Quranic injunctions, if the man has more than one wife. S. 13 (1) (ia) of the Hindu Marriage
Act, 1955 provide, the other party has, after solemnization of marriage, treated the petitioner
with cruelty; The Hindu Marriage Act, 1955, as originally enacted prescribed cruelty as a
ground for judicial separation only ie. s. 10 (1))b) of the Hindu Marriage Act,1955. Later in
1976, Marriage Laws (Amendment) Act 1976 has been inserted and prescribed cruelty to be a
Under the Dissolution of Muslim Marriage Act, 1939, cruelty has been
included as a ground on which a man can obtain divorce under the six
conditions stipulated. It is the only personal law which enables a woman to
divorce if her husband attempts to dispose of her legal property or prevent her
from exercising rights over her property. It also expressly recognizes physical
violence as cruelty, and as a ground for divorce. The negative aspect relating to
the Muslim law is that a man can divorce his wife without resorting to the
grounds stipulated through the practice of talaq, whereas a Muslim woman
can only secure divorce only through the above grounds of the Act. Some of
the grounds as to the definition of cruelty are considerably progressive than
37
other personal laws.
The limitations recognized while defining cruelty by the personal laws
is that it addresses only the spousal abuse within a matrimonial set up which
forms only a portion of the larger framework of the problem of domestic
violence. Human rights violations of other family members occurring within a
family has been discarded with. And hence matrimonial laws in India have also
proved to be unsuitable in addressing domestic violence as they deal mainly
with issues surrounding marriage and its dissolution.
ground for judicial separation as well as for divorce. It is now laid down in S. 13 (1) (ia) of the
Hindu Marriage Act, that the respondent has treated him or her with cruelty. Our Parliament
has borrowed the language of the English Matrimonial Causes Act, 1950].S. 10 of the Indian
Divorce Act, 1869 substituted by the Amendment Act 51 of 2001; S. 10 (1) (x) of the Indian
Divorce Act.1869, Sec 10 of the Act was amended in 2001 to make adultery and cruelty two
distinct and independent grounds for divorce for the woman. S. 27 (1) (d) of the Special
Marriage Act, 1954 prescribes that if the respondent has since the solemnization of marriage,
treated the petitioner with cruelty, it will amount to a ground for divorce. The provisions of S.
27 (1) (d) of the Special Marriage Act, 1954 is similar to that of S. 13 (1) (ia) of the Hindu
Marriage Act.1955.
37
RatnaKapur& Brenda Cossman, Subversive Sites- Feminist Engagements with Law in India,
Sage Publications, New Delhi (1996), p.111.
requirements differ from law to law. Cruelty has been interpreted in a variety of
forms and could be infinite in its species. It could be physical or mental, direct
or indirect, intended or unintended. A reference may be may be made of some
cases which are indicative of how the concept of cruelty is interpreted, as also
how it was evolved over a period of years so as to keep in tune with changing
times.
dangerous to life health or limb. In the leading case of Russel v. Russel39, it was
held that cruelty between spouses is behaviour which must be shown to be
detrimental to body or mind, or both, either in fact or in justifiable anticipation
of the particular injured spouse actually complaining. The dictum laid therein
has consistently been followed and continues to be a leading case for the test
and definition of matrimonial cruelty both in England and India.
Britt v. Britt40 is one of the very early English case which recognized
physical violence as cruelty which is a part of domestic violence. Munshee
41
Buzloor Rehman v. Shamsoonisa Begum case of Privy Council can be said to
have laid the foundation of the rule that cruelty as a ground for judicial
separation and later it became the guide and precedent that the High Courts
42
followed. The case of N. Sripadchandra v. Vasanta provides a very good
38
(1873)28 L.T.R. 540.
39
L.R (1897) A.C. 395.
40
(1953) 3 All E.R. 769.
41
(1867)11 M.I.A 551.
A.I.R. 1970 Mys. 232.
48
A.I.R. 1988 S.C. 121.
49
Srikanth v. Anuradha, A.I.R. 1980 Kant 8.
50
Jyotish v. Meera, A.I.R. 1970 Cal 266; Praveen Mehta v. Inderjit Mehta, A.I.R. 2002
S.C.2582.
51
Kalpana v. Swendra, A.I.R. 1985 All. 253.
52
Vineeth v. Vaishali, A.I.R. 1998 Bom 73.
53
Bhagwant v. Bhagwant, A. IR. 1967 Bom 90.
54
Dastane v. Dastan,e A.I.R. 1975 S.C. 1534 p.1540.It was held that satisfied means
satisfied on preponderance of probabilities and not satisfied under beyond reasonable
doubt particularly where in adultery, desertion and cruelty direct evidence may not be possible
as to the alleged cruel conduct.
55
Supra n. 49.
56
In Keshaorao v. Nisha, it was held by the Court that the broad test to
determine cruelty is whether the conduct of the respondent is of such type that
the petitioner cannot be reasonably be expected to live with the respondent or
living together of the spouses has become incompatible. The acts of violence
against wife, however minimal, will, therefore amount to cruelty in case the
acts cause distress, humiliation or indignity to wife or the acts affect her mental
or bodily health. This decision holds well as to the concern over the right to
human dignity and identity of a woman within the marital ties.
57
In Rajani v. Subramaniam the Kerala High Court remarked that judged
by the standards of modern civilization wives are not expected to endure
harassment in domestic life whether mental or physical like women in older days.
The acts and behaviour of human beings are diverse and infinite and so
it was held by the court that the interpretation and definition of the concept of
cruelty depends upon the character, way of life of the parties, their social and
economic conditions, their status, customs and traditions. 58The non limitation
of the definition of cruelty within a straight jacket formula holds good in the
present globalised world where human values and culture are getting eroded.
60
The case of V. Bhagat v. D. Bhagat related to a husband filing petition
against the wife for divorce on the ground of adultery 61.The court held that
extreme allegations of wife against itself was in the nature constituting mental
62
cruelty. The Court observed:
Mental cruelty must be of such a nature that the parties cannot
reasonably be expected to live together. The situation must be such
that the wronged party cannot reasonably be asked to put up with
such conduct and continue to live with the other party. It is not
necessary to prove that the mental cruelty is such as to cause injury
to the health of the petitioner. While arriving at such conclusion,
regard must be had to the social status, educational level of the
parties, the society they move in, the possibility or otherwise of the
parties ever living together in case they are already living apart
and all other relevant facts and circumstances which it is neither
possible nor desirable to set out exhaustively.What is cruelty in one
case may not amount to cruelty in another case. It is a matter to be
determined in each case having regard to the facts and
circumstances of that case. If it is a case of accusations and
allegations, regard must also be had to the context in which they
were made."
Coming to Chetan Dass v. Kamla Devi63 the court acknowledged that the
matrimonial matters includes delicate human and emotional relationship that
demands trust, regard, respect, love and affection with sufficient space for
mutual adjustments between the spouses. Such a relationship is required to be
accepted within the social norms. The court clearly recognized the role of law
in matrimonial relationships as to control matrimonial relationship in a healthy
perspective promoting peace in the society. The court stressed on the role of
marriage as an institution and observed:
64
A.I.R. 2001 Raj. 269.
giving the offended spouse the right to divorce. 68In Vijay Kumar Bhate v.
69
Neela Bhate the Supreme Court clarified that disgusting accusation of
unchaste and indecent familiarity with a person outside wedlock and allegation
of extra marital relationship was a grave assault on the character, honour,
reputation, status and health of the wife. And this accusation by itself amount to
cruelty. Another notable point clarified by the court was that the section on
cruelty does not stipulate any particular period or duration to be necessary to
constitute cruelty and that the intensity, gravity and stigmatic impact of it on
the mental attitude, necessary for maintaining a conducive matrimonial home
was to be considered in such cases. Here the mental torture and pain caused by
undue allegations on the conducive matrimonial setting has been recognized by
the court.
(2002) 7 S.C.C. 414,418, per S.V.Patil, J. It was a case relating to cruelty and abetment of suicide
against a young lady within 11 months of her marriage.
68
R. Balasubramaniam v. Vijayalakshmi Balasubramaniam, 1999 (7) S.C.C. 311.
69
A.I.R. 2003 S.C. 2462, per D.Raju,J.
The Supreme Courts decision in Samar Ghosh v. Jaya Ghosh72 has put
forth a view contrary to the prevailing notion of saving a marriage at all costs,
in the context of mental cruelty. It reads:
consent or knowledge of his wife may lead to mental cruelty: A wife undergoing sterilisation or
abortion without medical reasons or without the consent or knowledge of the husband may lead
to mental cruelty, unilateral decision of refusal to have intercourse for a considerable period
without any physical incapacity or valid reason may amount to mental cruelty, acute mental
pain, agony and suffering to a degree that would not make it possible for the parties to stay
with each other, on a comprehensive appraisal of the entire matrimonial life, if it becomes clear
that the wronged party cannot reasonably be asked to put up with such conduct and continue to
live with the other party, mere coldness of manner or lack of affection cannot amount to mental
cruelty, however, frequent rudeness of language, petulance, indifference and neglect could
reach a degree that makes married life for the other person intolerable, feeling of deep anguish,
disappointment, frustration in a spouse caused by the conduct of the other over a long time may
amount to mental cruelty, sustained abusive and humiliating treatment calculated to torture or
render miserable the life of the spouse could amount to mental cruelty, sustained unjustifiable
conduct affecting the physical and mental health of the spouse. However, the treatment
complained about and resultant apprehension must be very grave, substantial and weighty,
sustained reprehensible conduct, studied neglect, indifference or total departure from the
normal standard of conjugal kindness, causing injury to mental health or deriving sadistic
pleasure could amount to mental cruelty, jealousy, selfishness, possessiveness which causes
unhappiness, dissatisfaction and emotional upset may not be grounds for divorce on account of
mental cruelty, trivial irritations, quarrels, normal wear-and-tear of married life would not be
adequate for grant of divorce on grounds of mental cruelty, few isolated instances over a period
of years would not amount to mental cruelty. Persistent ill conduct for a lengthy period, where
the relationship has deteriorated to an extent that the wronged party finds it difficult to live with
the other party may amount to mental cruelty, long period of continuous separation indicating
that the matrimonial bond is beyond repair may lead to mental cruelty, etc.
74
by the judicial responses. And thereby men alone have not been stigmatized
as the perpetrator of violence within the marital bond. The Samar Ghosh case
has tried to bring in certain conditions and definitions to constitute mental
cruelty. But the question still remains as to how to make it applicable in the
Indian cultural context given the higher levels of gender inequity and
overarching patriarchal culture.
womanhood and her social position.76 All forms of physical violence and some
forms of emotional abuse, such as threats of physical violence and demands for
dowry falls within the definition of criminal conduct which could be attributed
to the offence of domestic violence faced by women within four walls of the
home.77They range from grave offences such as dowry death and suicide, to
comparatively milder offences such as assault.
78 79
5.5.1 Hurt and Grievous Hurt
Physical violence in every form is an offence. Any male or female
member harassing a woman physically can be punished. Criminal Law in India
recognizes two types of physical hurt i.e. simple and grievous hurt. Causing of
simple bodily injury, or disease, or infirmity is considered under the former
80
offence and the latter is of causing offences of serious nature. The person
inflicting the hurt need to have done it intentionally. Severe punishment is
provided in the law to offence of hurt with the use of dangerous weapons or
means which is of serious in nature.
76
Nomita Aggarwal, Women And Law in India, Womens Studies and Development Centre,
University of Delhi, New Century Publications, Delhi (2002),p.25.
They are covered under various section of the Indian Penal Code; s. 323 (hurt); s. 324 (hurt by
dangerous weapons; s. 325 (grievous hurt);s. 326 (grievous hurt by dangerous weapons; being
a non bail able offence);s. 352 (assault);s 337 (assault in order to confine a person);ss.
and 346 (wrongful confinement); s. 506 (criminal intimidation).All others except s. 326 are bail
able offences.
Id.,ss.319, 321, 323 and 324.
79
Id., ss.320, 322, 325 and 326.
Id., s.405.It includes causing of emasculation, loss of sight in one or both eyes; loss of hearing
in one or both ears; destruction or permanent impairment of the powers of any member or joint;
permanent disfiguration of the head or the face; fracture or dislocation of a bone or tooth; any
hurt which puts ones life in danger; any hurt that causes severe bodily pain for 20 days or
more; any hurt because of which one cannot carry on with ones normal work or lifestyle for 20
days or more.
81
5.5.2 Criminal Breach of Trust
Another law that has been applied to situations of dowry harassment
through judicial intervention is the concept of criminal breach of trust.
Criminal breach of trust is an offence under the Indian Penal Code, and is
intended to cover situations where a person entrusts a property in another, and
that other person betrays the trust and misappropriates it. Though this provision
is not specifically intended for dowry-related harassment, in Pratibha Rani v.
82
Suraj Kumar, the Supreme Court applied this general provision of law to a
situation of dowry harassment. The Court said that such property was meant for
the exclusive use of the wife and was only entrusted to the husband or his
relatives for safekeeping. They were duty-bound to return the property to her if
she asked for their return, failing which they could be prosecuted for the
offence of criminal breach of trust.
Stridhan refers to any property that is gifted to the woman during and
around the time of her marriage, or has been left to her will. It includes
property that has been gifted to her by parents, siblings and in-laws. It has been
upheld by the court that she is the absolute owner of that property and can deal
with it in any way she likes and her husband has no ownership rights over the
83
property and therefore the husband is morally bound to restore the property
or its value and the refusal to return it renders him guilty. 84 A wife deciding to
move out of the matrimonial house can resort to the provisions dealing with
Id., s. 406.
A..I.R. 1985 S.C. 628 More than a decade after the judgment in Pratibha Ranis case, a three-judge
Bench of the Supreme Court took a fresh look at the judgment in Rashmi Kumar v. Mahesh Kumar
Bhada,(1997) 2 S.C.C. 397, 1996, and said that the judgment requires no reconsideration.
83
Rashmi Kumar v. Mahesh Kumar Bhada, (1997) 2 S.C.C. 397.
84
Pratibha Rani v. Saroj Kumar, (1985) 2S.C.C. 370.The Supreme Court held that dowry given
by the parents, articles given to woman by her in-laws and husband such as jewellery and
clothes, which can be said to be for her exclusive use womans personal property can all be
said to be the womans exclusive property and her stridhana and she is entitled to the same.
The court further held that withholding a womans stridhana and refusal to return the same on
demand amounts to the offence of criminal breach of trust and is punishable under S.406 of the
Indian Penal Code.
to prove that the property was entrusted.85 The ingredients of the offence
require that the property was entrusted with a third party and there was refusal
by them to return it. In such circumstances another remedy would be to file a
suit for recovery of stridhana articles either independently or if any other
85
Supra n.83.
Such a decree can be passed under s. 27 of the Hindu Marriage Act,1955;s. 3(1)(d) of the
Muslim Women (Protection of Rights on Divorce) Act,1986;s. 42 of the Parsi Marriage and
Divorce Act,1936;s. 27 of the Indian Divorce Act,1869; and s. 7 (1)(c) of the Family Courts
Act,1984.Balkrishna RamachandraKadam v. Sangeeta BalkrishnaKadam,(1997)7S.C.C.500;
Rameshchand Daga v. Rameshwari Daga, (2005) 4 S.C.C. 772.
87
Indian Penal Code s.339
88
Id., s. 340.
89
Id., s. 354.
90
Id., s. 509.
pregnancy.92Causing death of a woman with child by any act done with the
intent to cause miscarriage is also made punishable under the Code. 93The Code
prescribes a maximum punishment of ten years for any act done with the
intention of preventing a child being born alive or to cause it die after the
91
Id., s. 312A woman who causes herself to miscarriage also comes under the meaning of
explanation to s. 312.
92
Id., s.313.
93
Id., s. 314.
94
Id., s. 315 .
95
Id., s. 316. This section punishes offences against children in the womb where the pregnancy
has advanced beyond the stage of quickening and where death is caused after the quickening
and before the birth of the child.
96
conception Exposure and abandonment of a child under twelve years by
parents or persons having care of the child with the intention of wholly
abandoning it is held punishable under the Code. 97The Indian Parliament has
passed the Medical Termination of Pregnancy Act, 1971 and the Pre- natal
Diagnostic Technique (Regulation and Prevention of Misuse) Act,1994 to deal
with the unlawful miscarriages and also the infanticide as well as the foeticide.
98
5.5.7 Bigamy
99
The law against bigamy is designed to safeguard one of the basic
institutions of society, marriage. With the exception of Muslims, bigamous
100
marriages under personal laws of all other communities is void. In India, in
order to prove the charge of bigamy, the validity of the second marriage must
be established, in the sense that the essential ceremonies prescribed by the
101
relevant personal law have been performed. Under the Criminal Procedure
Code, only the person whose spouse has committed the offence must make a
102
complaint for the court to take cognizance of the offence.
103
5.5.8 Adultery
Adultery is an offence against marriage punishable under the Code.
Adultery is also a ground for divorce under the Hindu Marriage Act, 1955,
96
Murugan v. State, 1991 Cri.L.J.1680 Mad.
97
Indian Penal Code. s. 317,
98
Id., ss. 494 and 495,
Bigamy meaning marrying again while ones spouse is still alive.
S. 5 (i) of the Hindu Marriage Act,1955 prohibits bigamy. S. 11 makes a bigamous marriage void and s.
17 makes it a penal offence under ss. 494 and 495 of the Indian Penal Code; s. 19
(d) of the Indian Divorce Act,1872;S. 5 of the Parsi Marriage and Divorce Act,1936.In the case
of Lily Thomas v Union of India, (2000) 6S.C.C 224,It was held that since bigamous marriage
is prohibited under The Hindu Marriage Act,1955 and is an offence under s. 17, any marriage
solemnized by the husband during the subsistence of his Hindu marriage ,would be void under
s.11 and offence triable under s. 17 read with ss. 494 and 495 of the Indian Penal Code,
regardless of such husbands conversion to another religion permitting polygamy. The same
view was upheld in the case of SarlaMudgal and President, Kalyani v. Union of India, (1995)
3S.C.C 635.
101
B.S. Lokhande v. State of Maharashtra, (1965) 2 S .C.R
837. 102Criminal Procedure Cod, s. 198 .
Indian Penal Code, s. 497
Special Marriage Act,1954, Indian Divorce Act, 1869 and the Parsi Marriage
and Divorce Act, 1936.Under the Dissolution of Muslim Marriage Act,1939
husbands association with women of evil repute or leading an infamous life is
a ground though it is considered as amounting to cruelty under the Act- it is
akin to living in adultery. Extra Marital sexual intercourse is an essential
element of adultery. It presupposes carnal union between a man and a woman.
104
The validity of section 497 of the Indian Penal Code has been challenged
number of times and the courts have held that this position is valid and
constitutional. A division bench of Supreme Court has held that section 497 of
the Indian Penal Code is so designed that a husband cannot prosecute the wife
for defiling the sanctity of the matrimonial tie by committing adultery. Thus the
law permits neither the husband of the offending wife to prosecute his wife nor
does the law permit the wife to prosecute the offending husband for being
disloyal to her.105
the idea that a woman is the property of the male. 106 An analysis of Sec 497
along with the various observations by the Supreme court and High courts
brings us to the conclusion that only a man can commit adultery. The married
woman who is involved in the conduct is not punishable as the adulteress
because she is treated as a victim not as the author of the crime. Woman is
looked upon as an object, an inanimate property having no legal existence
104
Yousuf Abdul Aziz v. State of Bombay, A.I.R. 1954 S.C.321. In the case of Soumitri Vishnu v.
Union of India, A.I.R. 1985 S.C. 1618:1985 Cri L.J.1302 (S.C.) Supreme court has upheld the
constitutional validity of S. 497 of the Indian Penal Code. The Supreme court justified its stand
on the ground that in contemplation of the law the wife who is involved in illicit relationship
with another man is victim and not the author of the c rime. The court further held that
definition of adultery does not discriminate between man and woman by conferring the right to
prosecute only the husband and that Sec 497 of the Indian Penal Code is not violative of
Articles 14 and 15 of the Constitution of India.
105
Revathi v. Union of India, A.I.R. 1988 S.C. 835.
Complaint for adultery can only be made by the aggrieved person and that person is none other than
the husband of the woman according to s.198 of the Criminal Procedure Code. In exceptional cases,
in the absence of the husband, some person who had the care of the woman on his behalf at the time
when the offence was committed, may with the leave of the court, initiate prosecution on his behalf.
public good.108 A woman being harassed in such a way either within the natal
family or the matrimonial house can take recourse of this provision of the code.
5.5.10 Death
107
Indian Penal Code,s. 499.
Id., Exception 9 of s. 499.
Id., s. 300.
110
Id., s. 299.
111 112
murder and to commit culpable homicide are also punishable under the
Code.
113
5.5.11 Rape
The Indian Penal Code deals with various sexual offences against
114
women .Of these offences; rape is the most brutal, which violates not only
the bodily integrity of woman but amounts to mental torture also. A minimum
and mandatory punishment with imprisonment of not less than seven years
extending to either ten years or even life imprisonment has been imposed by
the Code. 115The presumption of rape under the Indian Evidence Act, 1872 falls
116
in favour of the victim alleging rape. The reason for such presumption is that
a rapist not only violates the victims personal integrity but also degrades the
very soul of the helpless female. The Criminal Procedural Code provides
protection to the rape victim to the effect that the inquiry and trial of rape
should be conducted in camera.117Granting of interim compensation to rape
victims during the pendency of a criminal case if a prima-facie case is made
out against the accused and the need to deal such cases with utmost sensitivity
118 119
has been upheld by the Apex Court of the country.
111
Id., s. 307.
Id., s. 308.
Id., s. 375. It denotes the sexual intercourse with a woman first ,against her will; secondly, without her
consent; thirdly, with her consent obtained by putting her in fear of death or hurt ;fourthly, with her
consent when man knows that he is not her husband and if consent is given under her misconception of
his identity as her husband; fifthly, with her consent when at the time of giving consent she is under the
influence of unsoundness of mind or administration of some substance to make her give consent; sixthly,
with or without consent when she is under sixteen years of age.
114
Id., ss.375 to 376 D,377 and 509.
115
Id., s. 376
Under s. 114 A of the Indian Evidence Act,1872, in a prosecution of rape under Sec 376 of the Indian
penal Code, if the alleged victim states that she was raped, the court shall always presume that she did not
consent.
117
Criminal Procedure Code 1973 s. 327 (2) State of Punjab v. Gurmit Singh,(1996) 1 S.C.C.
485. 118State of A.P v. Gangula SatyaMurty, (1997) 1S.C.C. 272.
119
Bodhisattwa Goutham v. SubhraChakraborty, (1996) 1 S.C.C. 490.
120
5.5.12 Marital Rape
The law in India does not recognize marital rape as an offence. In
certain countries like United States of America, U.K., Denmark, Australia and
Sweden, marital rape has been made an offence. Sexual intercourse by a man
with his own wife if she is not under the age of fifteen years does not amount to
121
Rape. Forced sexual intercourse with a wife who is living separately under
an order of judicial separation has been held to be an offence under the Indian
122
Penal Code.
Marital rape exemption in the criminal justice system really reflects a
challenge to the fundamental right of women to live with human dignity under
123
the Constitution of India. The abolition of immunity for husbands would
emphasize the societys condemnation of sexual violence within the family. By
permitting marital rape, the law unconstitutionally forces all women to
surrender their right to bodily integrity, reproductive freedom and personal
liberty on marriage. And as aftermath of marriage wives suffer legally
sanctioned sexual violence in violation of their cherished right to life and are
120
Indian Penal Code, s. 376A.
121
Id., Exception to s. 375.
The most frequently cited basis for marital rape exemption is the doctrine of irrevocable
implied consent that originated in the seventeenth century declaration by Sir Mathew Hale.
Hales implied consent theory led to the belief that because a woman gave her consent to
sexual relations with her husband at the time they were married, he could forever assume that
the original consent still applied. This notion still undeniably undergrid the marital rape
exemption in the Indian Penal Code.
123
State of Maharashtra v. Madhukar N. Mardikar,(1991) 1 S.C.C. 57.
Suman Saha , Sleeping with the Enemy?- Recognising Marital Rape 10(2) Womens Link
(2004).
Under the Criminal Law (Second Amendment) Act, 1983, section 174
125
Criminal Procedure Code was suitably amended.
Under the Criminal Law (Second Amendment) Act, 1983, a new section
126
namely 113 A, was inserted in the Indian Evidence Act.
The inclusion of section 304 B in the Indian Penal Code in the Dowry
Prohibition (Amendment )Act,1986 and the introduction of dowry
death as a new offence.
A new section, 113 B was inserted in the Indian Evidence Act through the
127
Dowry Prohibition (Amendment) Act, 1986.
Section 8A in the Dowry Prohibition Act, 1961, was introduced by the
128
Dowry Prohibition (Amendment) Act, 1986.
In 1986, there was another amendment to the Indian Penal Code in the
form of 304-Bby which an entirely new offence, which had until then been
unknown to criminal jurisprudence was recognized dowry death. Where the
death of a woman is caused by any burns or bodily injury or occurs otherwise
than under normal circumstances within seven years of marriage, and if it is
established that the wife had been subject to cruelty for dowry by her husband
or his relatives soon before her death, that death is termed as a dowry
125
It provided for investigation by the police, of cases of suicide committed by women within
seven years of marriage or where their death occurs under suspicious circumstances within
seven years of marriage.
Under this section when a woman commits suicide within a period of seven years from the date of her
marriage, due to cruelty by her husband or his relatives, the court may presume that such suicide has
been abetted by her husband or by his relatives.
127
Under the provision of this section, when a person has been responsible for the dowry death
of a woman and it is established, that such a woman had been subjected by such person to
cruelty or harassment prior to her death. The Court shall presume such person had caused the
dowry death.
The new section lays down that where any person is prosecuted for taking or abetting the taking of
any dowry or demanding of dowry, the burden of proving that he had not committed such offence ,
shall be on him.
129
death. The dowry death provision applies only to married woman. This
offence was made cognizable and non- bailable. The term dowry used in the
Code has the same meaning as defined in the Dowry Prohibition Act and is not
confined to only that given at the time of marriage. The Supreme Court has in a
series of judgments held that soon before her death is a relative term and that
no time limit can be fixed for the same. The court looks at the proximate live
link between the effect of cruelty based on dowry demand and the death
130
concerned as the event should not be remote in time. The burden of proof
gets shifted to the accused to prove his innocence. After the ingredients of the
offence gets established charges can be framed for offences under murder,
abetment of suicide, dowry death and for cruelty to married woman by husband
or by his relatives in the alternative. Since the introduction of dowry death law
the judgments pronounced by the courts clearly reveal that maximum
The presumptions132 apply only if the offence takes place within seven years of
marriage. These sections, I13 B of the Indian Evidence Act and 304B of the
Indian Penal Code read in conjunction shift the burden of proof from the
prosecution to the husband or his relatives accused of the offence. This is a
departure from the normal rule of evidence and has been introduced to
strengthen womens position in vulnerable situations. But while dealing with
such dowry death cases Courts have resorted to mixed interpretations of the
133 134
provisions resulting in both negative and positive judgments . The
ingredient of the lofty and much applauded offence of dowry death
(section.304B) has made it impossible to prove the offence. Earlier a case of
wife murder would be registered under section302. The prosecution needed to
prove the accused in terms of his proximity to the scene of offence and motive
for the murder. But after the amendment, a wife murder ceased to be a murder
In the case of Appasaheb v. State of Maharashtra, (2007) 9 S.C.C.721. the Supreme Court overruled the
conviction of the appellants (husband and in-law) under Sec 304 B of the Indian Penal Code combined
with Sec 34 of the Code, and held that demand for money by the husband and his family was on account
of some financial stringency or for meeting some urgent domestic expenses and that it cannot be termed
as a demand for dowry as the word is normally understood. The Court observed that a strict interpretation
must be given to the word dowry as defined in the Dowry Prohibition Act, 1961 and be necessarily be
connected with the marriage. This judgment fails to take into account the reality of the way in which
demand for dowry takes various forms even after the actual marriage ceremonies are completed, and how
women continue to be harassed for dowry long after the initial demand at the time of marriage. In Saro
Ram v. State, (2005) Cri. L.J. 457 A.P; where the demand of money for house construction was not held
to be a dowry demand for the applicability of S. 304 B of the Indian Penal Code.
134
State of West Bengal v. Orilal and another, (1994) 1S.C.C. 73.Pawan Kumar v. State of
Haryana,(1998) 3S.C.C. 309. Supreme Court interpreted the circumstances where section
304B can be admissible, to include mental cruelty even in the absence of physical cruelty
sufficient for charge under s.304B In this case the couple was married in 1985. There was
demand of dowry right from the day of marriage. The wife was mentally tortured by various
means. Two years later, the wife mentioned to her sister and brother in law that she was being
ill-treated by her husband because of dowry. The following day, she committed suicide. The
question that arose for consideration was that when there was no clear evidence of physical
torture prior to her death, could the husband be held guilty for causing a dowry death. The
Supreme Court held that mental cruelty is cruelty too and that ground was sufficient to meet the
requirements of section 304B of the Indian Penal Code. It further held that dowry demands
need not be related to the wedding. Persistent demands made thereafter would also amount to
dowry demands.; Beena Agarwal v. Anupam, A.I.R. 2004 S.C.141. In Smt Shanti and another
v. State of Haryana, A.I.R. 1991 S.C. 1226;Supreme Court held that even a case of suicide
would be within the expression death occurred otherwise than in normal circumstances and
would attract the provision of Sec. 304 B of the Indian Penal Code if other ingredients of the
section are proved. In Hem Chand v. State of Haryana India, 1994 (6) S.C.C. 727. Supreme
Court interpreted the circumstances where S.304B, IPC can be admissible, to include suicide In
this case, the wife stayed for two months in her matrimonial home and thereafter returned to
her parents home. She complained that her husband was demanding more dowry. This demand
of dowry continued for quite some time and after two years, the wife died of strangulation. The
question that arose for determination in this case was whether S.304B2 of the Indian Penal
Code which relates to dowry death, could be applied. The Supreme Court of India where the
matter was heard eventually, reached the conclusion that it was indeed a case where S.304B
was attracted, even if it was not conclusively proved, whether the strangulation had been
caused by the husband, or was suicidal. It was held that the key test in these cases was to
understand whether the death was a result of harassment for dowry or not.
the death of the woman has been caused by burns or bodily injury or
otherwise than under normal circumstances;
the death of the woman has occurred within 7 years of her marriage;
and finally, that such cruelty or harassment was meted out to the woman
soon before her death.
Only once these ingredients were proved the onus would shift on to the
husband to prove that he did not commit the offence in order to seek acquittal..
While resorting to negative interpretations by the courts, there is constant erosion
of the basic human values of tolerance and the spirit of live and let live.
It is to be noted that section 304B is used only in the cases when there is
a death within seven years of marriage. Section 304B loses its applicability
135
after that. In State of Punjab v. Iqbal Singh and others, it was observed that
period of seven years is considered to be the turbulent one after which the
legislature assumes that the couple would have settled down in life. The section
only deals with the situation that the where there is a death which clearly brings
in the limited application of section.304 B.
135
1991 Cri.L..J 1897 (S.C.).
be made responsible for the death of the woman under the provision of dowry
136
death. It is at this juncture that punishment for abetment of suicide comes
into play. Cruelty meted out in such cases holds the same meaning as in the
Section 498 A of the Indian Penal Code. Prosecution need only to prove the
cruelty and that it in turn forced the woman to commit suicide and thereby
shifts the burden of proof to the husband or his relatives. In cases where
woman committed suicide after seven years had elapsed since the marriage, the
prosecution will have to prove beyond reasonable doubt that the cruelty was of
such nature that it drove the woman to commit suicide. This seven year limit
clause has proved to be a major impediment in prosecuting cases of dowry
death. The provisions of abetment to suicide, with its positive rules of
evidence, have failed to bring redressal as the court interprets the newer
provisions in the most technical manner. Some important judgments would
substantiate the above premise.
136
Indian Penal Code. ss. 306 and 107.
137
Ashok Kumar v. State of Punjab,1987 Cri.L.J,412.
138
BapuSubhdeo v. State of Maharashtra (1992) 2 Bom CR 450;Lal Mohan v. State (1993) 1
Crimes 298.
the time of suicide it was committed in all probability out of frustration and
139
pessimism due to her own sensitiveness.
139
Padmavati v State of M.P.,1987 Cri.L..J.1573.
The law states: Whoever being the husband or the relative of the husband of a woman, subjects
such a woman to cruelty, shall be punished with imprisonment for a term which may extend to
three years and shall also be liable to fine. This section defines cruelty as: a)any willful conduct
which is of such a nature as is likely to drive the woman to commit suicide or to cause grave
injury or danger to life, limb or health (whether mental or physical ) of the woman or
b)harassment of the woman where such harassment is with a view to coercing her or any
person related to her to meet any unlawful demand for any property or valuable security or is
on account of failure by her or any person related to her to meet such demand.
141
1986 Cri.L.J 1510 Delhi.
The contention was that the provision was violative of A.14 in as much as it gave an arbitrary
power to the police as well as to the courts, that the word harassment used in part (b) of the
explanation was vague and thus any person can be arbitrarily arrested for harassment and this
section violates the principles against Double Jeopardy guaranteed by Art.20(2) of the
Constitution in view of the fact that the demand of dowry or any property was punishable
under this section as well as Section 4 of the Dowry Prohibition Act,1961.
2005(3)RCR(Criminal)745 S.C.
constitutionally valid and the object of this Section is to combat the menace of
dowry deaths and cruelty.
The cumulative effect of sections 498A and 304B of the Code is that the
offences under these sections have discriminatory protective clauses against the
inhuman, barbaric treatment of women at the hands of unscrupulous husbands
and relatives. Such offences are not only held as against the woman victims but
also against the society and humanity.
Courts has taken a view that every kind of harassment are not included under 498Aand that the
complainant has to conclusively establish that beating and harassment in question was with a aview to
compel her to commit suicide or to satisfy the dowry demand. Sarla PrabhakarWaghmare v. State of
Maharashtra, 1990 Cri. L.J. 407 (Bom); Shanti v. State of Haryana, (1991) 1S.C.C. 371;Benumadhob
Padhi Mohapatra v. State,2004 Cri.LJ.505 Orissa at p.508.
with the dowry premise has proved to be inadequate to meet the real life
situations of victims. By placing the dowry violence on a special pedestal, the
routine violence faced by women is denied recognition and legitimacy. In order
to access the criminal justice system, violence faced by women within homes
need to be superficially and falsely attributed to dowry. The provisions of the
section 498A for its applicability requires a valid and subsisting marriage
between the parties and in its absence, no case could be made out. Moreover,
every aspect of crime or harassment does not come under its ambit. The
prosecution has to establish that the cruelty or harassment was persistent, grave
and unbearable in nature and the same was with the intention to force woman
to commit suicide or to fulfill illegal demand of dowry by the husband or the
in-laws. The law on the problem completely de links itself from other forms of
familial violence like child abuse and elder abuse. It addresses only spousal
abuse and it is high time to amend and enlarge its scope to include the
problems of women victims of fake marriages, divorced or widowed women,
elder abuse etc.
For the Indian women marriage is a sacred bond and she tries her
best not to break it. As this offence is made non- bailable and non-
compoundable it makes reconciliation and returning to marital
home impossibleLess tolerant impulsive wife may lodge even on
a trivial act. The result is that the husband and his family may be
This view is also supported by Save family Organization a collective of males fighting against
draconian anti cruelty legislations in India. See more details, Rukmini Sen, Womens
Subjectivities of Suffering and Legal Rhetoric on Domestic Violence: Fissures in the Two
Discourses, 17(3) Indian Journal of Gender Studies 388 (2010).
146
Judicial responses as to women held as abusing beneficial provision of s. 498-A are Amisha
Bhandari v State of Haryana,2005(2)RCR (Criminal 429(P&H); HarmohanKaur v. State of
Punjab,2006(3) R.C.R. (Criminal) 932(P&H); Ramesh v. State of Tamilnadu, 2005(1) Apex
Criminal 537 S.C. etc.
Family ideology construe women as loyal, self- sacrificing and dependent wives. It operates to regulate
women through moral and economic regulation.
148
Sushilkumar Sharma v. Union of India, A.I.R 2005 S.C. 3100.
as to prevent their misuse, which has the potential to unleash new legal
terrorism149.
Id., p.19
150
Prohibition of child marriage Act, 2006 has emerged to replace the older law on Child
Marriage Restraint Act of 1929.This explanation as to the earlier law is only to enlighten the
readers as to what was the law at that point of time on child marriage. The Act aimed only at
restraining solemnisation of child marriages in the country and not its prevention or
prohibition. The procedures laid down under this law to act against solemnisation of child
marriages were very cumbersome and time consuming. It did not identify authorities
responsible for preventing child marriages. To overcome the shortcomings of Child Marriage
Restraint Act, the Government of India enacted the Prohibition of Child Marriages Act, 2006
(PCMA), which received the assent of the President of India on 10 January, 2007. The Act
came into effect from 1 November, 2007. The basic premise of the law is: To make a child go
through a marriage is an offence and child or minor is a person up to 18 years in the case of
girls and 21 years in the case of boys. A Preventive perspective- The solemnisation of child
marriages is a cognisable and non-bailable offence. Child Marriage Prohibition Officers
(CMPOs) are to be appointed in every state to prevent child marriages, ensure protection of the
victims as well as prosecution of the offenders. The Courts have the power to issue injunction
for prohibiting child marriages from taking place. From protective perspective- The law makes
child marriages voidable by giving choice to the children in the marriage to seek annulment of
marriage. It provides for maintenance and residence of the female contracting party. It gives a
legal status to all children born from child marriages and makes provisions for their custody
and maintenance. The law provides for all support and aid including medical aid, legal aid,
counselling and rehabilitation support to children once they are rescued. For more details refer
to http://www.unicef.org/india/ChildMarriagehandbook.pdf. Last visited on 23 rd July 2013
Rights of Women against Domestic Violence-The Law and Emerging
Challenges 197
Legal Protection Against Domestic Violence in India- Pre-
2005 Scenario
child marriage but it merely seeks to restrain them. The court has held that it
151
does not purport to render child marriage as void. Instead it prescribes
penalties for persons responsible for child marriages. This Act keeps a check on
the guardians of minors from exploiting them for money. The Act makes it an
offence for a girl below eighteen years and a boy below twenty one years to
marry .It make the parents and if the husband is over eighteen years of age
offenders. The civil court under its jurisdiction and under the above Act152, in
the interest of the child, has the power to issue an injunction to prohibit a child
marriage from being performed. Failure to abide by the injunction is
punishable with a sentence of simple imprisonment up to three months or with
a fine upto Rupees thousand or with both.
having an inextricable nexus with marriage. 153.In recognition of the fact that
this dowry is the genesis of domestic violence in the matrimonial home, the
151
V. Mallikarjunaiah v. H.C.Gowramma, A.I.R. 1997,Kant 77.
152
Child Marriage Restraint Act, 1929. s. 12
Dowry Prohibition Act,1961 s. 2 defines dowry as any property or valuable security given or agreed to be
given either directly or indirectly by one party to a marriage or their parents or any other person to the
other party to the marriage or to any other person before, at or after marriage which is given in connection
with the marriage but it does not include mahr or dower.
154
Act criminalizes the giving and taking of dowry. The Act prescribes
154
Dowry Prohibition Act,1961 s. 3.
Id.,s. 4 provides a minimum imprisonment of six months upto two years and fine upto
Rs.10,000/-.
Id.,s. 3 provides minimum imprisonment of five years, except for reasons to be recorded in writing the
court may award less punishment along with a fine of Rs.15,000/- or the dowry amount whichever is
more.
157
Expert paper EGMGPLHPAsmita Basu_.pdf. Last visited on 2nd December 2013
Dowry Prohibition Act, 1961, s 8 B
159
Shobha Rani v. MadhukarReddy, A.I.R 1988 S.C. 121.
160
Prem Singh v. State of Haryana, A.I.R 1998 S.C 299: 1998 (8) S.C.C 700.
161
State of Punjab v Iqbal Singh, A.I.R. 1991 S.C. 1532.
162
the Act and role of the judiciary has been stressed by the court. The Apex
Court has upheld that even in cases of lack of valid marriage, the husband
could not be allowed to take shelter behind a smoke screen that there was no
valid marriage. Persons who contract marriages ostensibly and co-habit with
women in the purported exercise of their role and status as husband would
In State of Karnataka v. M.V. Manjunathegowda, (2003)2 S.C.C. 188 commenting upon the objects of the
Dowry Prohibition Act and the role of judiciary, the Supreme Court observed that: the practice of giving
and demanding dowry is a social evil having deleterious effect on the entire civilized society and has to be
condemned by the strong hands of the judiciary. Despite various Amendments providing deterrent
punishments with a view to curb the increasing menace of dowry, death remains unabated. Every court
must be sensitized to the enactment of the law and purpose for which it is made by the legislature. It must
be given a meaningful interpretation and no leniency is warranted to the perpetrators of crime against the
society.
163
Beena Agarwal v. Anupam ,A.I.R. 2004 S.C. 1418.
The newly inserted sections of the Indian Penal Code and the Indian
Evidence Act164 have improved but not cured the disease. This is mainly
because of the fact that social conditioning is a strong restraint to legal
changes. Lack of direct circumstantial evidence often results in dowry murders
being passed off as voluntary suicide. The Supreme Court has lamented the
manner in which the government machinery has functioned in the
implementation of the Act and the Court directed the Central and State
Governments to take more effective steps to implement its provisions
especially sections three and four and the rules under the Act and also directed
165
the state governments to activate the dowry prohibition officers. The
inefficiency of the law to deal with this social problem has been made manifest
by the Apex Court in the above case. The fact that an increasing number of
cases of homicide caused as a result of the inability of the womans family to
pay dowry were being reported, paved the way for a more stringent and
comprehensive legislation.
Indian Penal Code ss.304 B and 498A and Indian Evidence Act 1872 s. 113 B .See for details
of for dowry related case laws in the foot note and the accompanying text under the title
judicial decisions on matrimonial cruelty.
The In re Enforcement and Implementation of the Dowry Prohibition Act,1961,(2005) 4 S.C.C.
565:A.I.R 2005 S. C. 2375. The Supreme Court has also directed the government to take steps
to spread anti dowry literacy among people through LokAdalats and the media.
According to s. 2 (c) of the Commission of Sati Prevention Act,1987, Sati means the burning
or burying alive of widow along with the body of her deceased husband or any other relative,
or with any article, object or things associated with the husband or relative.
Indian Penal Code. s. 309.
of sati punishable under the provision. But the sentence provided in that section
was not deterrent enough to prevent the commission of such practice. Further
that section also did not provide for the glorification of sati subsequent to the
commission of sati.168
The Act criminalizes glorification of sati which includes observance,
support, justification, or propagation of sati.169Abetment of sati either directly
or indirectly is made punishable with death or imprisonment for life and fine.
Abetment includes obstructing the woman or police from prevention of
commission of sati and being an active participant in the ceremony connected
170
with it. The attempt to commit sati is also punishable with one year
According to s. 4 of the Act it provides for the regulation of the use of pre-natal diagnostic techniques for
the purpose of detecting genetic or metabolic disorders or chromosomal abnormalities or certain
congenital malformations or sex linked disorders and for the prevention of the misuse of such techniques
for the purpose of pre-natal sex determination leading to female foeticide.
Ss. 7 and 16 of the Act empowers and directs the Central government to constitute an authority
called Central Supervisory Board consisting of the minister for Family Welfare, the Secretary
of such ministry/department and 21 other members including eminent geneticists,
gynecologists, social scientists and women parliament members etc for a period of three years.
174
Id., ss. 18-21.
175
Id., s. 22 .
176
Id., ss. 22-28.
The quantum will be determined by factors including financial position and status of the
respondent, the reasonable wants of the claimant, the standard of life of the claimant, any
source of income of the claimant.
Ministry of Women and Child Development, National Policy for the Empowerment of Women,
2001, WCD, Government of India, New Delhi.
The Eleventh Plan that rightly identified the issue when it asserted that
violence is a public health issue and its call for the training of medical
personnel at all levels of the health care system to recognize and report
violence against women and children.
The Plan recognizes that any approach towards ensuring gender equity
has to be multipronged and should (amongst other things), ensure an
environment free from all forms of violence against women)physical,
economic, social, psychological etc., strengthen existing institutional
mechanisms and create new ones for gender main-streaming and effective
179
policy implementation .
The need for training and sensitizing medical students has also been
spelt out by the Plan given that medical and health establishments are often the
first point of contact for women experiencing domestic violence. The Eleventh
Five-year Plan provided for budgetary allocations for the implementation of all
such acts that promote and protect the rights of women. The strategies laid
down by the Planning Commission and in The National Policy for the
Empowerment of Women (2001) are undoubtedly the way forward.
179
WHO (2002): World Report on violence and Health - summary, downloaded from
http://www.who.int/violence_injury_prevention/violence/world_report/en/summary_en.pdf.
Last visited on 9th October 2010
None of the legislations in India had a specific definition on Domestic violence till 2005.
This is in the context of S.498A specifically. See supra n. 144 at p.393
Till 2005 there existed no understanding of domestic relationships and the different ways in which the
females at their different stages of life could possibly be abused or harassed.
nature of marriages though their relationships did not meet the requirements of
a legally valid marriage.
attendant discrimination means a virtual civil death for a woman 185. The only
two options open to a victim of domestic violence was to resort to either the
civil remedy of divorce or the criminal remedy available under Section
498A.There was no via-media available to a woman who sought protection
from domestic violence and that was one of the factors that contributed to the
gross misuse of the provisions of 498A IPC. Most remedial measures on
domestic violence were considered ancillary reliefs in matrimonial
186
proceedings , and domestic violence was not treated independently as a
situation warranting immediate legal intervention. Women had to approach
different courts for different remedies (family courts / district courts / criminal
courts), leading to multiple litigations in multiple courts, causing considerable
hardship to women and criminal laws do not allow space for any negotiations.
187
In 2000 -2004 the total number of domestic violence cases registered were 711,778
According to Lok Sabha Debates, 23rd August 2005. In 2005 the total number of dowry deaths
was 6,787 and total number of cases of cruelty was 58,319,750 cases of rape by parents/family
members were registered. Sixty one percent of educated men in the highest income groups
resorted to sexual violence. XIV Lok Sabha Debates 465, 23 rd August, 2005.
.. ..
Chapte
r6
THE PROTECTION OF WOMEN FROM DOMESTIC
1
Criminal Procedure Code,s.125.
Rights of Women against Domestic Violence-The Law and Emerging
Challenges 210
The Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act,
2005 An Appraisal
The laws that existed considered only married women as the subject of
the concern and only legally married women could sue under these laws. The
law failed to comply with the definition of violence against women in the
international treaties like Convention on Elimination of all forms of
Discrimination against Women and Universal Declaration of Human Rights,
which looks at it as a violation of rights and fundamental freedom of women.
To eliminate these loopholes the Protection of Women against Domestic
Violence Act, 2005 was enacted.
Since the popular conception of violence at home did not merit much
consideration as a punishable offence, the feminist movement, aimed at
attaining substantive equality for women, regarded the domestic violence as
one of the chief disabilities for the promotion of womens rights and their
claims to equality. Womens rights movement of the west struggled hard to
2
India Penal Code,1860, s.498A.
3
Dowry Prohibition Act, 1961.
Indian Penal Code,1860, s.304 B.
There was growing realisation since late 1980s that domestic violence
needs special attention and is closely associated with womens rights. Due to
the growing influence and impact made by the womens movement between
1970s and 1990s, the issue of domestic violence attained a primacy in at least
the formal stance taken in public policy and criminal justice system of many
countries. The local womens movement in many countries, inspired and
energized by the international womens human rights movement greatly
contributed in exerting pressure on their respective governments to change
their policy stance especially in the criminal justice system to comply with the
ongoing international standard setting.
The Protection of Woman From Domestic Violence Act,2005 Statement of Objects and
Reasons.
This provision confers on the Parliament the power to make laws in pursuance of international
treaties, conventions, etc.
Right to Equality; Article 14 contains the equal protection clause. It affirms equality before the
law and the equal protection of the laws.
8
Article 15 disallows discrimination on the grounds of religion, caste, sex, race, etc., but
permits the State to make special provisions for certain classes of persons, including women
and children.
Art. 21 states:No person shall be deprived of his life and personal liberty except according to
the procedure established by law.
Article 21 confers the right to life and liberty in negative terms, stating
that it must not be taken away except by procedure established by law, which is
11
required, as a result of judicial decisions, to be fair, just and reasonable . The
Supreme Court by its dynamic interpretation expanded the concept of right to
life. The following decisions are relevant in this context and many new rights
have been added to it.
12
In Francis Coralie Mullin v. Union Territory Delhi, Administrator , the
Supreme Court observed that that, any act which damages or injures or
interferes with the use of any limb or faculty of a person, either permanently or
even temporarily, would be within the inhibition of Article 21.This right is
incorporated in the Act through the definition of physical abuse, which
constitutes domestic violence and is hence punishable under the Act. Physical
abuse is said to consist of acts or conduct of such nature that they cause bodily
pain, harm, or danger to life, limb or health, or impair the health or
10
Where a law effects a classification and is challenged as being violative of this Article, the
law may be declared valid if it satisfies the following two conditions. 1. The classification must
be based on some intelligible differentia, 2. There must be a rational nexus between this
differentia and the object sought to be achieved by the law. As a result of the ruling in cases
such as E.P Royappa v. State of Tamilnadu,(1974) 4.S.C.C. 3, 38, any law that is arbitrary is
considered violative of Article 14 as well. This provision is significant in putting a stop to
arbitrariness in the exercise of State power and also in ensuring that no citizen is subjected to
any discrimination. At the same time, it preserves the States power to legislate for a specific
category of people.
11
Maneka Gandhi v. Union of India, AIR 597, 1978 S.C.R. (2) 621
12
1981 (1) S.C.C. 608; A.I.R.1981S.C.746.
development of the aggrieved person. Apart from this, the Act also includes
similar acts of physical violence and certain acts of physical violence as
envisaged in the Indian Penal Code within the definition of domestic violence.
Since a victim of domestic violence is subjected to physical abuse and lives in
a state of perpetual fear of violence and fear for her life, she is unable to live a
life free of violence or fear of violence. By adoption of such an expansive
definition, the Act protects the right of women against violence.
13
In Ahmedabad Municipal Corporation v. Nawab Khan Gulab Khan ,
the Supreme Court emphasized the fact that the right to life included in its
ambit the right to live with human dignity, basing its opinion on a host of cases
that had been decided in favour of this proposition. The right to dignity would
include the right against being subjected to humiliating sexual acts. It would
also include the right against being insulted.
These two facets of the right to life find its manifestation under the
definitions of sexual abuse and emotional abuse, respectively in the Act. A
praiseworthy aspect of the legislation is the very conception of emotional abuse
as a form of domestic violence. The recognition of sexual abuse of the wife by
the husband as a form of violation to the person is creditable; especially as such
sexual abuse is not recognized by the IPC as an offence. These acts would fall
within the confines of domestic violence as envisaged by the Act, though the
definition would not be limited to it.
14
In Chameli Singh v. State of U.P it was held that the right to life would
include the right to shelter. Under S.6 of the Act, it is a duty of the Protection
Officer to provide the aggrieved party accommodation where the party has no
place of accommodation, on request by such party or otherwise. Under
Section17, the partys right to continue staying in the shared household is
protected. These provisions thereby enable women to use the various
protections given to them without any fear of being left homeless. In contexts
where women are dispossessed from their matrimonial / parental home due to
domestic violence, their right to shelter is violated.
In Vikram Deo Singh Tomar v. State of Bihar16, the Apex Court rightly
explained the duty cast on the equality doctrine enshrined in the Constitution
where it contemplated special provision for women and children. The Court
thus held:
15
1996 A.I.R. 114, 1995 S.C.C. Supl. (3) 456
16
1988 A.I.R. 1782, 1988 S.C.R. Supl. (1) 755
The Act aims at providing protection to women who are faced with
violence within a domestic relationship. In its preamble, the Act mentions the
rights of women under the Constitution, and the necessity of ensuring that these
rights are recognized even in the private sphere of the home and family.
17
Madhu Kishwar v. State of Bihar, (1996) 5 S.C.C. 125; Bar dancers case - Indian Hotels and
Restaurants Association & Others v.The State of Maharashtra & Others, 2006 (3) Bom.C.R. 705
The Act envisages comprehensive procedural tools and adequate relief measure
to facilitate easy access to justice to any aggrieved party.
The Act clearly identifies the victim groups and what are the processes
and reliefs to be made entitled to them in cases of different types of violence. It
manifests a combination of civil reliefs backed by criminal sanctions and they
are dealt with in a detailed manner. The Act has not attempted to create a new
offence with respect to the issue of domestic violence but merely provides a
palliative treatment to the victims of domestic violence and to prevent
recurrence of the same. The only instance in which the perpetrator of violence
can be punished under this Act is when he violates any order of the court,
passed under the Act. The intention being clear from this that the Act protects a
victim and not punishes the perpetrator.
The Act recognizes the very fact that house is not a safety zone for the
women inmates therein and thereby attacks the very strong base of the holding
of the traditionalists that women are born to endure all sufferings within the
house. Moreover the Act envisages the participation of a wide spectrum of
actors, which includes administrators created by the Act, as well as the civil
society.
The broader impact that the Act aims to have is multi-fold. It has the
potential to become a tool by which women are empowered to move out of
circumstances detrimental to their physical and emotional wellbeing; a medium
by which hitherto untouched social space can be made more gender sensitive
and responsible to womens concerns. This is an important step in furthering
the agenda of female emancipation in the country.
In India, the remedies under the Act have largely been adopted from
similar laws in other jurisdictions. However, it has been reinvented in several
ways in order to grasp the concerns and peculiarities of Indian society such as
dowry deaths. For instance, the Act defines domestic violence in a wide
manner so that issues like marital rape yet to be recognized as a penal offence
under the Indian law can be dealt with. Quasi civil-criminal remedies enable
several different interest groups such as girl children and live-in couples to
obtain effective remedies that circumvent societal compulsions. The following
analyses of the Act will evaluate these innovative legislative tools adopted
under the new Act within a theoretical and practical framework.
The Act is the first substantial step in the direction of vanquishing the
questionable public/private distinction traditionally maintained in the law. It is
a comprehensive and gender sensitive legislation that introduced many new
features and thereby raised various controversial issues and questions. Along
with certain explanations on the new concepts in the Act, comparative
provisions on the same under different jurisdictions are also compiled .The
Rules that define the institutional framework for the new Act which came into
18
force with effect from 26 th October 2006 are also examined. An analysis of
the Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act, 2005 involves six
aspects:
What is the definition and scope of the term domestic violence under the
Act?
What are the reliefs available to a victim of domestic violence under the
Act, and its effectiveness when compared to the existing system of law?
What are the consequences of breaching the judicial orders passed under
the Act?
The Rules specify the rights of the victim and the duties of the authorities under the Act. It
specifies the procedure for exercise of powers under the Act including eligibility and
appointment of authorities, manner of counseling, disposal of applications, service of summons
etc.
The first aspect from which the Act is to be viewed is the extent of its
applicability. The Act allows institution of proceedings by an aggrieved
person. An aggrieved person has been defined as any woman who is, or has
been, in a domestic relationship with the respondent and who alleges to have
envisaged by the Constitution of India22. Women and children are the primary
beneficiaries of this Act.
The Act is an innovation over the conventional understanding of
domestic violence, in that it did not limit the protection against violence solely
to marital relationships. Respondent under the Act is defined as any adult male
person who is ,or has been, in a domestic relationship with the aggrieved
person and against whom the aggrieved person has sought any relief under this
19
Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act,2005 s.2(a)
20
Id., s.2 (b) defines a child means any person below the age of eighteen years and includes
any adopted, step or foster child.
21
MadhuPurnimaKishwar, Well Intentioned but Over Ambitious A Review of the New
Domestic Violence Act, Sage Publications India (Pvt.) Ltd .New Delhi (2008), p.220.
22
The Constitution of India, Art.15(2).
relationship has been defined in wide terms 25 and has brought out many crucial
changes. Under the Act, the domestic relationship is the basis for a woman to
take action. The concept of domestic relationship has broadened the scope of
who may seek remedies under this law. Previously only a woman who was able
to prove her relationship with the other party by blood or marriage (such as
wives and mothers) were entitled to remedies related to domestic violence,
such as right to residence and maintenance. It has not been restricted to only
provide protection to women against abuse by their husbands and in- laws as
provided under Sections.304B and 498A of Indian Penal Code, but has also
been extended to include within its ambit abuse or violence or ill treatment
26
inflicted by a womans father , brother or any male relative of her own family.
Until the passing of this Act, no legislation had conferred specific protection
against abuse meted out by members of the family into which she was born. As
envisaged by the Act, domestic relationships are not restricted to the marital
context alone.
23
Supra n. 19, s.2(q).
Id.,s.2(f).
25
Azimuddin v. State of Uttar Pradesh, MANU/UP/0238/2008.
26
Chitraganthan v.Seema, I (2008) D.M.C. 365.
Another significant advance has been the fact that relief can also be
claimed by women against men with whom they have shared a relationship in
the past. The Act has not specified how long a couple has to have lived in the
shared household (the period of co-habitation) in order for a woman to claim
benefit under the Act. A woman who has lived with a man for two or three
months without being married to him can at any point of time seek relief under
this law, at par with legally wedded wife. This amounts to making mockery of
laws against bigamy. The habitation rights of live-in-partners in the same
household in case of already married men cannot be protected in this way
without serious damage to the rights of legally married wife and her children. It
is perfectly legitimate to protect a woman from violence and punish a man for
inflicting it on her, whether or not she is married to that man. However to give
her right to claim maintenance and get injunctions baring her male partners
entry into his own house are raising too flimsy claims with a view to promoting
harassment and blackmailing the male partners. In the guise of protecting
women victims of bigamous marriages the rights of legally wedded wife and
her children is put at risk which can trigger criticisms and protests against the
Act as a western duplication of law adopted from western culture not at all
advisable for the traditional Indian culture.
The legislature while passing the Act has ignored that having sexual
27
intercourse with any person other than his/her spouse is aground for divorce .The
provisions which provide for maintenance pendent-lite and permanent alimony
28
respectively do not recognize any relationship except that of legally wedded
husband and wife. The provision through which grant of maintenance to wife
29
children, father and mother in a broader perspective, does not recognize persons
having illegitimate relationships entitled to claim maintenance except an
illegitimate child. The law accordingly prohibits wife living in adultery from
30
claiming any maintenance from the husband . It is really contradictory to
understand that while on one hand a married woman indulging in adultery is not
entitled to claim maintenance from the person with whom she had or is having
illegitimate relationship. The legislature has also has not noticed that adultery is
31
also an offence .Therefore ,while on one hand ,a man will be prosecuted for
adultery, at the same time he will be compelled to pay maintenance as well as
residency rights to a woman with whom he is alleged to have maintained
illegitimate relationship. This provision is likely to destroy the matrimonial
relationships thereby disturbing the social fabric of the society.
27
Hindu Marriage Act,1955 s.13 (1) (a).
28
Id.,ss.24 and 25.
29
Criminal Procedure Code,1973.s.125.
30
Id., s.125 (1).
31
Indian Penal Code,1860 s.497 .
,title or interest in this shared household32. Here the Act envisages the space
where the woman and the perpetrator of violence have lived together in a
domestic relationship irrespective of the pattern of ownership. Often, the
violence is directed not only against the woman but is intended to cut off all her
support structures, deny access to essential services and to withhold a woman's
own property or children in an attempt to blackmail. The most obvious way of
achieving this aim is to throw the woman out of the household. The idea of
shared household comes to her rescue in this context.
One of the criticisms that are raised against this definition of domestic
relationship is that it excludes from its purview the children, especially those
33
who have lost their parents , being the most vulnerable targets of domestic
violence. The Act does not make any provision for the protection of domestic
servants, which is a significant lacuna, given that the ill treatment of maid
32
Supra n. 19, s.2(s)
XIV Lok Sabha Debates 348, 23 August 2005.
34
Tahira Karanjawala and Shivani Chugh, The Legal Battle Against Domestic Violence In
India: Evolution and Analysis, 23 International Journal of Law, Policy and the Family 294
(2009).
35
S. 62(3) Family Law Act,1996, in England and Wales. The definition is similar to that of
aggrieved person under the Act ,I. e. person associated with another person includes those
persons who i)are or have been married to each other; ii)are co-habitants or former co-
habitants; iii)live or have lived in the same household, otherwise than merely m by reason of
one of them being the others employee, tenant, lodger, or boarder ;iv)are relatives; v)have
agreed to marry one another(whether or not that agreement has been terminated);vi)are in
relation to any child, I.e.is a parent or has had parental responsibility for the child; and vii)are
parties to the same family proceedings.
Under ss.4 and 5 of the Domestic Violence Act 1994 of Malaysia, a protection order may be
available to the complainant who may be a i) spouse, ii)former spouse, iii)child, iv)an
incapacitated adult, v)any other member of the family.
S.40002(6) of the Violence against Women Act ,1994,of the U.S.A as inserted s.3 of the
Violence against Women and Department of Justice Re-authorization Act of 2005
38
Id., s.40002(8).
marriage39.In U.K, the Domestic Violence ,Crime and Victims Act 2004 has
40 41
extended the definition of co-habitants to include same sex couples and
has extended protection to non- co- habiting couples as well. The only criterion
for claiming relief being that the complainant was in an intimate personal
relationship with the respondent for a significant duration 42.And moreover
child as a victim of domestic violence occupies a specific category under the
43
definition of aggrieved person .
Womens experience of violence, and of the justice system, are further
shaped by their race, colour, religion, political or other opinion, national or
social origin, property, marital status, sexual orientation, HIV/AIDS status,
migrant or refugee status, age, or disability. In many societies, women
belonging to particular ethnic or racial groups experience gender-based
violence as well as violence, based on their ethnic or racial identity. It is
important that legislation, or subsidiary legislation, where necessary, make
specific provision for the appropriate and sensitive treatment of women
complainants/survivors of violence who suffer multiple forms of
discrimination. The widest coverage is provided by the Vietnamese law, which
does not include any clause defining survivors or coverage and is gender
neutral. It is advisable to include all forms of domestic relationships within the
ambit of the law.
The second aspect of the Act that lends itself to analysis is the definition
and scope of domestic violence under the Act. The Act defines domestic
violence for the first time in Indian law. It is a comprehensive definition and
captures womens experiences of abuses within the four walls of the home. The
39
Id.,s.40002(23.
40
The Family Law Act.1996.s.62 (1).
The Domestic Violence, Crime and Victims Act,2004, s.3.
42
Id., s.4.
Supra n.20.
material and forcing the aggrieved person to entertain others sexually 51.The
recognition of marital rape as a form of violence, is the other vital
improvement that has been introduced by the Act. It is significant that under
Indian criminal law, marital rape is not a crime unless the wife is under 15
years of age. However, by including sexual abuse as a form of domestic
violence, protection is provided to a wife against sexual abuse under this law.
Moreover, the law does not consider only habitual assault to be domestic
violence. Even a single act may amount to domestic violence if it falls within
any of the categories listed in the law.
48
Id., s.3, Explanation I, Clause(i).
The protection of Women from Domestic Violence Rules, 2006 Form V.
50
Supra n. 19 s.3,Explanation I, Clause ( ii).
51
Supra n. 49 Form I.
52
Supra n. 19 s.3 Explanation I, Clause (iii),
(a). 53Id., s.3, Explanation I, Clause (iii), (b).
One of the novel concepts envisaged under the Act is the use of the term
economic abuse which is not seen in any of the laws that existed prior to
passing of this Act. Nor were such terms discussed because it was considered
to be a concept influenced by western feminism. The term economic abuse in
the Act includes a wide range of acts and omissions such as the deprivation of
all or any economic or financial resources to which the aggrieved person is
entitled under law or custom or which she requires out of necessity including
inter alia household necessities for her and her children, her stridhan and
property either jointly or separately owned by her, payment of rent or the
54
shared household, maintenance etc. It also includes the disposal of household
effects, the alienation of assets, valuables, shares, securities, bonds etc., in
which she has an interest or is entitled to use by virtue of the domestic
relationship or which may be reasonably required by her or her children; and
the disposal or alienation of her stridhan or any other property jointly or
55
separately held by her etc. .A prohibition or restriction on her continued
access to resources or facilities, which she is entitled to use or enjoy, including
employment, etc57.
like the CEDAW59 and the ICESCR mandate Indias affirmative duty to correct
inequalities that women face inside and outside of the marital home including
those concerning their economic survival, to eliminate social and cultural
practices oppressive to women, support womens right to work and
independently choose their employment, and to advance their fundamental
right of self-determination. Consequently, international law also supports the
proposition that economic abuse be viewed broadly, and thus both domestic
and international law, in promoting the expansion of this term in the Act, may
provide a greater remedy for victims of domestic violence, granting women the
right to control their economic resources will empower women and punishing
58
Nirmal Chopra, The Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act, 2005-Immorality
Legalised, Cri. L.J. 57 (2007).
59
Articles 11 and 16 in particular.
men for exerting control over their spouses will contribute to changing mens
attitudes concerning gender equality and domestic violence in the future.
However the new Act leaves as much scope for misuse as the previous
laws whose faults it was supposed to remedy, especially since it puts short term
live-in-relationships at par with legal marriages. The common criticism raised
in the context is as to whether the Act promotes Bigamy which is punishable
under the criminal law and is promoting the western concept of live in
relationships. If the rights of a wife and a live-in partner become equivalent it
would promote bigamy and there would arise a conflict between the interests of
the wife and the live-in-partner. The Act in effect is acknowledging the reality
of violence and destitution that is common in such relationships which is
unleashed against the helpless women. The legal sanction for live-in-
relationships is meant to work to the advantage of women who become victims
of their circumstances, even if it was a matter of choice, it is based on the
assumption that the relationship is not between equals and therefore women
need protection by the courts from the patriarchal definition of marriage and
such relationships too.
orders60 and non-molestation orders61.The law there has not taken note of all
these novel concepts. In USA, the Violence against Women Act 1994, has
defined domestic violence to include felony or misdemeanor crimes of
62
violence and does not extend to emotional abuse by the family. In Malaysia,
Domestic ViolenceAct1994 provides that domestic violence includes willfully
or knowingly placing, or attempting to place, the victim in fear of physical
injury, causing physical injury to the victim by an act that is known or ought to
have been known would result in physical injury, compelling the victim by
force or threat to engage in any conduct or act, sexual or otherwise, from which
the victim has a right to abstain, confining or detaining the victim against his or
her will or causing mischief, destruction or damage to property with intent to
cause, or knowing that it is likely to cause distress or annoyance to the
60
The Family Law Act,1996 s.33
61
Id., s.42,The Family Law Act,1996
Violence Against Women Act, 1994,as inserted by s.3 of the Violence against Women and
Department of Justice Reauthorisation Act,2005.s.40002 (6)
63
The Domestic Violence Act,1994 s.2
relations between men and women and discrimination against women. The
64
For example,The Austrian Code of Criminal Procedure, since 2006, provides specific
procedures and rights for women complainants/survivors of violence in the criminal justice
process in order to avoid their secondary victimization.
Supra n.19 s.2 (n) read with s.8 of the Act provides for the appointment of protection officers by the
state government,which will appoint for any district, as many protection officers as are required for
each district.
66
Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Rules, 2006, r.3(1), proviso.
S.8. Duties and functions of Protection Officers.- (1) It shall be the duty of the Protection
Officer -
to assist the aggrieved person in making a complaint under the Act, if the aggrieved person so
desires;
to provide her information on the rights of aggrieved persons under the Act as given in Form
IV which shall be in English or in a vernacular local language;
The Protection Officer may assist the Magistrate in the discharge of his
functions under the Act, make a domestic incident report68to the Magistrate,
make an application to the Magistrate if the aggrieved person so desires
praying for issuance of a protection order 69,ensure legal aid to the aggrieved
person under the Legal Services Authority Act,1987,maintain alist of service
providers70,make available a shelter home if the aggrieved person so
to assist the person in making any application under section 12, or sub-section (2) of section 23
or any other provision of the Act or the rules made there under;
to prepare a "Safety Plan" including measures to prevent further domestic violence to the
aggrieved person, in consultation with the aggrieved person in Form V, after making an
assessment of the dangers involved in the situation and on an application being moved under
section 12;
to provide legal aid to the aggrieved person, through the State Legal Aid Services Authority;
to assist the aggrieved person and any child in obtaining medical aid at a medical facility
including providing transportation to get the medical facility;
to assist in obtaining transportation for the aggrieved person and any child to the shelter;
to inform the service providers registered under the Act that their services may be required in
the proceedings under the Act and to invite applications from service providers seeking
particulars of their members to be appointed as Counselors in proceedings under the Act under
sub-section (1) of section 14 or Welfare Experts under section 15;
to scrutinize the applications for appointment as Counselors and forward a list of available
Counselors to the Magistrate;
to revise once in three years the list of available Counselors by inviting fresh applications and
forward a revised list of Counselors on the basis thereof to the concerned Magistrate;
to Provide all possible assistance to the aggrieved person and the children to ensure that the
aggrieved person is not victimized or pressurized as a consequence of reporting the incidence
of domestic violence;
to liaise between the aggrieved person or persons, polices and service provider in the manner
provided under the Act and these rules;
to maintain proper records of the service providers, medical facility and shelter homes in the
area of his jurisdiction.
In addition to the duties and functions assigned to a Protection officer under clauses (a) to
(h) of sub-section 9, it shall be the duty of every Protection Officer-
to protect the aggrieved persons from domestic violence, in accordance with the provisions of
the Act and these rules;
to take all reasonable measures to prevent recurrence of domestic violence against the
aggrieved person, in accordance with the provisions of the Act and these rules.
68
Id., s.9(i)b
69
Id., s.18
70
Id., s.2(r) read with s.10(1). It provides that any voluntary association registered under the
Societies Registration Act,1860,or a company registered under the Companies Act,1956 whose
objective is the protection of women and is involved in the provision of legal aid, medical or
financial assistance to women and is to get registered itself with the state government as a
service provider.
requires71, get the aggrieved person medically examined if she has sustained
72 73
bodily injuries ,ensure that the order for monetary relief of the Act is
complied with and executed in accordance with the provisions of Code of
Criminal Procedure,1973 and perform such other duties as may be laid down
by the Central Government by Rules 74.The domestic incident report of the
Protection Officer will be very significant in the decision making process under
the Act as it will disclose the genuiness of the allegations made in the
complaint. The Protection Officer in emergency cases will have to resort to
prompt actions and are empowered to respond to the emergency calls of the
75
victim in consonance with delivering justice to the victim . The Protection
Officer as per the Rules have to undertake certain enquiries for the passing of
orders in interim orders under the direction of the Magistrate concerned to the
effect that order passed is not prejudicial and is genuine76.In fact the Protection
Id., s.2(t) defines the concept of shelter home and the duties are enumerated under s.6.
72
Id., s.7 enumerates the duties of medical facilities.
73
Id., s.20.
74
Id., s .9 .
75
The Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Rules,2006, r 9. Action to be taken in
cases of emergency- If the Protection Officer or a service provider receives reliable information
through e-mail or a telephone call or the like either from the aggrieved person or from any
person who has reason to believe that an act of domestic violence is being or is likely to be
committed and in a such an emergency situation, the Protection Officer or the service provider,
as the case may be, shall seek immediate assistance of the police who shall accompany the
Protection Officer or the service provider, as the case may be, to the place of occurrence and
record the domestic incident report and present the same to the Magistrate without any delay
for seeking appropriate orders under the Act.
76
Id., r.10. Certain other duties of the Protection Officers-(1) The Protection Officer, if directed
to do so in writing, by the Magistrate shall-
conduct a home visit of the shared household premises and make preliminary enquiry if the
court requires clarification, in regard to granting ex-parte interim relief to the aggrieved person
under the Act and pass an order for such home visit;
after making appropriate inquiry, file a report on the emoluments, assets, bank accounts or any
other documents as may be directed by the court;
restore the possession of the personal effects including gifts and jewellery of the aggrieved
person and the shared household to the aggrieved person;
assist the aggrieved person to regain custody of children and secure rights to visit them under
his supervision as may be directed by the court.
assist the court in enforcement of orders in the proceedings under the Act in the manner
directed by the Magistrate, including orders under section 12, section 18, section 19, section
20, section 21 or section 23 in such manner as may be directed by the court.
Officer is envisaged to assist and aid the Magistrate in reaching effective orders
for the proper enforcement of the Act.
Service Provider them are clearly enunciated in the Rules 78.They are generally
NGOs working for womens rights. Service Providers are made responsible for
recording and forwarding domestic incident reports to Magistrates and
Protection Officers; getting the victim medically examined and forwarding the
medical report to the protection officer and the police station within the local
limits of which the incident occurred and also ensuring that the victim is
take the assistance of the police, if required, in confiscating any weapon involved in the alleged
domestic violence.
The Protection Officer shall also perform such other duties as may be assigned to him by the
State Government or the Magistrate in giving effect to the provisions of the Act and these rules
from time to time.
The Magistrate may, in addition to the orders for effective relief in any case, also issue
directions relating general practice for better handling of the cases, to the Protection Officers
within his jurisdiction and the Protection Officers shall be bound to carry out the same.
77
Id.,S.2(r) read with S.10(1)
78
Id.,Rule.11. Registration of service providers-(1) Any voluntary association registered under
the Societies Registration Act, 1860 (21 of 1860) or a company registered under the Companies
Act, 1956 (1 of 1956) or any other law for time being in force with the objective of protecting
the rights and interests of women by any lawful means including providing of legal aid,
medical, financial or other assistance and desirous of providing service as a service provider
under the Act shall make an application under sub-section (1) of section 10 for registration as
service provider in Form VI to the State Government.
The State Government shall, after making such enquiry as it may consider necessary and after
satisfying itself about the suitability of the applicant, register it as a service provider and issue a
certificate of such registration:
79
Id., S.10
Providers as per the Rules clearly prescribe the need for the experience of such
80
Id.,Rule 11(3) :Every association or company seeking registration under sub-section (1) of
section 10 shall possess the following eligibility criteria, namely:-
It should have been rendering the kind of services it is offering under the Act for at least three
years before the date of application for registration under the Act and these rules as a service
provider.
In case an applicant for registration is running a medical facility, or a psychiatric counseling
centre, or a vocational training institution, the State Government shall ensure that the applicant
fulfils the requirements for running such a facility or institution laid down by the respective
regulatory authorities regulating the respective professions or institutions.
In case an applicant for registration is running a shelter home, the State Government shall,
through an officer or any authority or agency authorized by it, inspect the shelter home, prepare
a report and record its finding on the report, detailing that-
the maximum capacity of such shelter home for intake of persons seeking shelter;
the place is secure for running a shelter home for women and that adequate security
arrangements can be put in place for the shelter home;
the shelter home has a record of maintaining a functional telephone connection or other
communication media for the use of the inmates;
The State Government shall provide a list of service providers in the various localities to the
concerned Protection Officers and also publish such list of newspapers or on its website.
The Protection Officer shall maintain proper records by way of maintenance of registers duly
indexed, containing the details of the service providers.
81
Id.,R.17.Medical Facility to the aggrieved person- (1) The aggrieved person or the Protection
Officer or the service provider may make a request under section 7 to a person in charge of a
medical facility in writing, clearly stating that the application is being made under.
When a Protection Officer makes such a request, it shall be accompanied by a copy of the
domestic incident report
Provided that the medical facility shall not refuse medical assistance to an aggrieved person
under the Act, for her not having lodged a domestic incident report, prior to making a request
for medical assistance or examination to the medical facility.
If no domestic incident report has been made, the person-in-charge of the medical facility shall
fill in form I and forward the same to the local Protection Officer.
The medical facility shall supply a copy of the medical examination report to the aggrieved
person free of cost.
82
Id., R.16. Shelter to the aggrieved person-(1) On a request being made by the aggrieved
person, the Protection Officer or a service provider may make a request under section 6 to the
person in charge of a shelter home in writing, clearly stating that the application is being made
under section 6.
When a Protection Officer makes a request referred to in sub-rule (1), it shall be accompanied
by a copy of the domestic incident report registered, under section 9 or under
Rights of Women against Domestic Violence-The Law and Emerging
Challenges 238
The Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act,
2005 An Appraisal
revealing her identity the same is taken care of in the Act through the Rules 83.
The state government is also tasked with ensuring that the service providers
meet applicable criteria under the Act and rules framed there under. These rules
are to be strictly complied with so as to ensure that private participation,
though wide, must be of the specialized standards to further the objectives of
protecting the victims of domestic violence. The Protection Officer is subject to
desires85
Any women whom has been the victim of domestic violence may
initiate proceedings before a Magistrate, or such proceedings may be initiated
86
by the Protection Officer who may be informed of such domestic violence by
any person who has reason to believe that it has occurred 87.This provision
makes it crystal clear that a woman victim need not necessarily set the
proceedings in motion and that the locus standi of the person giving
information as to the instance of domestic violence happening/happened is not
restricted in any sense. Any bonafide person acting in good faith can inform the
happenings to the Protection Officer or the service provider as the case may be.
Section 4 therefore creates a social responsibility on members of the
community at large who have knowledge of an impending or already
section 10: Provided that shelter home shall not refuse shelter to an aggrieved person under the
Act, for her not having lodged a domestic incident report, prior to the making of request for
shelter in the shelter home.
83
Id., R.16 (3) If the aggrieved person so desires, the shelter home shall not disclose the
identity of the aggrieved person in the shelter home or communicate the same to the person
complained against.
84
Supra note 19S.9(2)
85
The Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Rules ,2006 r. 16
86
Supra n.19 s.12(1); Milan kumarSingh v. State of Uttar Pradesh 2007 Cri.L.J. 4742
87
Id., s.4(1)
to her under the Act88.Most important of all, the protection officer can be
penalized for failing/refusing to discharge his/her duty provided that prior
sanction is obtained for the purpose89.The Act also provides for the medical
examination of the victim, the report of which will be forwarded by the
protection officer to the Magistrate and police officer having jurisdiction 90. The
Act focuses on the speedy remedy for the victim and ensures a violence free
environment for her in the domestic space where she is supposed to move
about. In addition, Magistrates who are to hear cases under the Act are
empowered to appoint counselors who are to assist the petitioner and report to
91
the Magistrates court .
Role of NGOs
88
Id., s.5 vests the responsibility upon the Protection officer, Service provider, Police officer, or
Magistrate to disclose to the victim as to her right to make an application for obtaining reliefs
enumerated under s.17 of the Act; as to the availability of services of service providers; the
availability of protection officers; right to free legal aid; right to file a complaint under s.498A
of Indian Penal Code 1860.
It invites a penalty of Rs.20,000/- and /or a prison term of upto one year for failing to do their
job.
90
Supra n. 19 s.9(g)
91
Id., s.14(1)
working for womens rights to register as service providers under the Act. The
Act is a unique experiment in Indian legislative history as it creates an interface
between the Government and the NGO sector and utilizes the experience and
92
resources of both to provide effective machinery for its implementation .
The protection officers and members of the service providers are
deemed to be public servants and have all the rights, benefits and duties that
93
accrue with such a status .Enshrining their services in law grants their actions
important legitimacy; according them the status of public servants protects
them from frivolous persecution. The Act envisages to make it mandatory for
the Magistrate to fix the date for hearing the matter within a period of three
days94from the date on which an application is presented by the victim or by a
protection officer or any other person on her behalf 95 and makes it necessary to
dispose of the application within a period of sixty days.from the date of first
96
hearing .The Act takes steps protect the identity and privacy of the victims by
providing for the proceedings before the Magistrate to be carried on in camera
at his discretion or at the request of either party 97 .The Act also provides that
Magistrates may appoint Welfare Experts98, preferably woman who will assist
them in the discharge of their functions 99 and may direct the victim to undergo
counseling either jointly or singly100.
Under the Act, government organizations have the role of ensuring
effective co- ordination between the services provided by concerned ministries
and departments dealing with law, home affairs and including law and order,
92
Sidharth Luthra; The Domestic Violence Act: Can We Make a Success of It? Halsburys
Law Monthly, Lexis Nexis, 25 (2008).
93
Supra n. 19 S.30.Ie.protection from suits, prosecutions and other legal proceedings for acts
done in good faith,etc.
94
Id., s.12(4);Neetu Singhv. Sunil Singh, A.I.R. 2008 Chh 1.
95
Id., s.12(1) ; Chitraganthan v. Seema, I (2008)D.M.C. 365.
96
Id., s.12(5).
97
Id., s.16.
98
Id., s.15.
99
Id., s.15.
100
Id.,s.14.
health and human resources to address the issues of domestic violence, giving
wide publicity to the provisions of the Act and for providing periodic
sensitization and awareness training to Central Government and State
101
Government officers on issues addressed by the Act .
The Act is an improvement over the earlier/prevailing legal mechanism
as far as the role of the law-enforcing agencies is concerned. The success of
any law is dependent to a large extent upon how effectively the law-enforcing
agencies play their role. Earlier the enforcement of law was largely the
responsibility of police that itself never accepted domestic violence as a
crime; rather it always perceived such violence as a part and parcel of Indian
culture. But this Act creates two new offices for the purpose of implementing
the law, one is Protection Officers and the second is Service Providers
Despite the lofty aspirations envisaged under the Act there exist the
ground realities in India. Criticisms has pooled in enquiring about the resources
and capacity of NGOs to provide such wide range of effective medical and
shelter facilities. The Government-run shelter homes and medical facilities
remain as dens of corruption. There is no provision envisaged under the Act to
reimburse the NGOs or budgetary allocation of finance to pay for the expenses
incurred for the services offered. There are loopholes by which anti-social
elements will manage to get it registered as service providers much faster than
the genuine NGOs.
101
Id., s.11.
102
Id., s.3.
The Act does not provide for any penalty to be imposed or prosecution
to be launched against a service provider for filing false complaints under the
Act. Such unfettered freedom and rights are bad in law and there are chances of
abuse or misuse by the service providers for purposes other than those
prescribed for them to be performed under the Act.
103
This is in reference to a Seminar related to Domestic Violence Act,2005 held at Government
Law College, Kozhikode, Kerala in the year 2012 attended by the researcher.
104
Supra n. 19 s.12(1).
legislation of this nature. As per the corresponding rules of the Act 105, only
disqualifications of a counselor is provided and it leaves room for widest
chance of entry of counselors who are not at all sensitized towards the issue of
domestic violence. During the course of counseling the respondent shall not be
106
allowed to plead any counter justification for the violence inflicted is an
applaudable clause which improves the scope of counseling envisaged under
the Act. But the training that is necessary for the mediators in this issue, their
awareness and sensitivity to the problem, their attitude etc. plays a very leading
role in reaching settlements. In a society where the culture is predominantly
patriarchal and age old dogmas exist and are deep seated, it is a highly
debatable issue as to the effectiveness in counseling and the fruits intended to
be reaped. There exists the widest chance of a woman victim surrendering
herself to the demands and interests dictated by the male victim which is
happening in the Family Courts that are already in existence. Also it is very
unclear as to what force a settlement reached during counseling sessions or as
to any undertaking signed by the accused to refrain from domestic violence
would have and what consequences a breach if such an undertaking might
entail. However it is advisable to conduct counseling if required before the
matter reaches the court. The problem of domestic violence is very much a
social problem and it has to be viewed in that perspective.
105
Id., s.13.
106
Id.,s.14(5).
provided under the other enactments107.The relief available under the Act may
be sought in any other legal proceedings before a civil court, a family court, or
a criminal court irrespective of whether such proceedings were initiated before
108
or after the commencement of the Act . The law complements existing
Id., s.36.
Id., s.26(1) There is a single window clearanceunder this law in supporting womens access to justice.
S.26 lays down that civil relief can be claimed in any pending proceeding, which means if there is a
divorce proceeding pending; if there is a partition suit pending; if there is a
matrimonial and criminal laws on domestic violence, so that women have a wider
option in legal provisions that can be applied. They would exercise this option by
assessing as to which law would most effectively address their specific situation
and need. The Act may also be applied retrospectively and empowers the
Magistrate to take cognizance of any act of domestic violence alleged to have been
109
committed even prior to the commencement of the Act .
The different modes of relief envisaged under the Act are: Protection
Orders, Residence Orders, Monetary Reliefs, Custody Orders, and
Compensation Orders. Each of such orders may be passed by the Magistrate
while disposing of the application, depending on the reliefs sought for by the
aggrieved person and taking into account the necessities of the victim at that
point of time.
Protection Order
The Magistrate after giving the aggrieved person and the respondent an
opportunity of being heard and on prima facie satisfied that domestic violence
has taken place or is likely to take place, may pass Protection Order in favour
110
of the aggrieved person .It may contain an order prohibiting the respondent
from committing any act of domestic violence or aiding or abetting therein,
entering the place of employment of the aggrieved person or if the person
aggrieved is a child its school, or any other place frequented by the aggrieved
person or attempting to communicate in any form whatsoever with the
aggrieved person without the leave of the Magistrate, alienating any assets,
operating bank lockers or bank accounts belonging to both the parties jointly or
to the respondent singly, including her stridhan or any other property held
jointly or separately by them, causing violence to the dependents, other
relatives or any person giving the aggrieved person assistance from domestic
custody application pending; if there is a 498A application pending, an application under this
law can be made for a protection order or for an injunction restraining dispossession
109
Id.,s.26(1).
110
Id.,s.18 of the Act.
violence or committing any other act as specified in the Protection Order 111.
The Protection Orders would be in operation till the aggrieved person applies
for a discharge (removal of the order).112 The court is duty-bound to study the
application and ensure that there is a change in circumstances that warrants the
discharge of the Protection Order113, and the aggrieved person has not been
subjected to any sort of coercion, before issuing the necessary orders.
These Protection Orders, are in the nature of restraining orders
restraining the respondent from indulging in all these activities mentioned and
it can only be vacated on an application by the victim 114.They are very much in
consonance with the non- molestation orders which may be obtained in the
115
U.K. The relief provided by the laws of Malaysia , also provide for an
additional discretionary power of arrest in cases where the court is satisfied that
there is likelihood of physical injury being inflicted on the victim by the
aggressor. Being in the nature of civil remedy, the relief provided under the Act
is much milder when compared to stringent provisions under Section 498 A.
The Protection Order contemplated under the Act serves the purpose of
stopping violence order immediately and is likely to be a significant step
towards reducing its repetitive invocation and indiscriminate abuse.
Residence order
116
Another type of relief envisaged under the Act is the Residence orders .
In the Indian patriarchal society, most ownership and lease agreements are made in
the names of male members of the family. Hence, women who reside in such
111
Id.,s.18(a) to (g) of the Act.
112
Id., s. 25(1) of the Act.
113
Id., s. 25(2) of the Act.
114
Id.,s.25(1) of the Act.
115
s.7(1) Where the court is satisfied that the person against whom a protection order or interim
protection order is made is likely to cause actual physical injury to the protected person or
persons, the court may attach a power of arrest to such protection order or interim protection
order, as the case may be. Available from APWLD 2003: apwld@apwld.org. Last visited on
23rd July,2013.
116
Supra n. 19 s.19.
premises, including wives, mothers, daughters and sisters, face the danger of
being dispossessed from the same and forced to destitution. Many women are
forced to tolerate domestic violence for fear of being on the streets, especially
when they do not have support from their parents or government support for
shelter. In situations where such women seek the courts intervention in a
situation of domestic violence, women also fear that the respondent would
dispossess them from the premises by way of a reprisal /revenge.
117
Id.,s.17 (1) and (2).
118
Id., ss.19 (a) to (f).
119
Id.,s.19(1), proviso.
child of hers120: to require a bond to be executed from the respondent for the
121
prevention of domestic violence ,to impose any obligations relating to the
discharge of rent and other payments 122; to direct the respondent to return any
123
stridhan, property, or valuable security to which the victim is entitled ; and to
empower any officer in charge of the nearest police station or within the
jurisdiction of the Magistrate to enable the implementation of such orders124.
It is to be remembered in this context, that the right to residence is different
from property rights that include right to own and dispose of a property. This law
provides a right to the woman against being illegally dispossessed. She may be
dispossessed through the procedure set out in law. The right to residence does not
125
entitle the woman with the right of ownership over the premises. These
provisions of residence orders are much in tune with the relief provided under
126 127
Malaysian law and the occupation orders available under the Family Law
Act,1996 of Britain,which goes a step further and recognizes the right of both
128
spouses to occupy the matrimonial home .
Monetary Reliefs
The Act envisages Monetary reliefs where by the magistrate may direct
the respondent to pay monetary relief to meet the expenses incurred and losses
suffered by the aggrieved person and any child of the aggrieved person as a
result of domestic violence including any maintenance, loss of earnings,
medical expenses, or any loss cause d due to destruction, damage or removal of
120
Id., s.19(2).
121
Id.,s.19(3).
122
Id., s.19(6).
123
Id., s.19(8).
124
Id., ss.19(5), 19(7).
For more details, see Address of Chandru J. of the High Court of Chennai, at Staying Alive:
National Conference Commemorating 1 Year of the Protection of Women from Domestic
Violence Act, 2005, New Delhi, 26-27 October 2007.
Domestic Violence Act,1994 s.6.
127
Family Law Act,1996 s.33.
128
Supra n. 19, s.30.
any property from the control of the victim 129,which is consistent with the
130
standard of living she is accustomed to. In case of breach of such order by
the respondent, the Magistrate may direct the employer or a debtor of the
aggressor to directly pay the victim or to deposit the same with the court a
portion of the wages or salary or debt due to or accrued to the credit of
aggressor which may be adjusted towards the towards the monetary relief
payable by him131.This type of payment made to the victim out of the debts
accrued from the aggressor and adjusting the same from it relates the Garnishee
132
proceedings under the Code of Civil Procedure in India .No specific criteria
has been laid down or fixed by judicial interpretations as to the amount of
compensation to be arrived at. So it can very well be deciphered that it depends
on each case and its circumstances.
Custody Orders
The Act provides for Custody orders where by the magistrate may at
any stage, grant temporary custody of any child or children to the victim or any
person making an application on her behalf and specify the visitation rights of
the aggressor, which may be refused if the Magistrate is of the opinion that it
129
Id., s.20(1).
130
Id.,s.20(2) Suresh Khullar v.Vijay Kumar Khullar A.I.R. 2008 Delhi I.
131
Id.,s.20(6).
Civil Procedure Code, 1908,o.21, r.46.
133
Domestic Violence Act,1994. s.10.
will be harmful to the child134. Under this law, the aggrieved person cannot file
an application for temporary custody alone; such an application has to be
coupled with a protection order since the main aim of this law is to prevent
Compensation orders
The Act also provides for Compensation orders that may be additionally
granted by the Magistrate to the victim as compensation for any injury,
including mental torture and emotional distress, which may have been caused
by the aggressor136. The law makes provision for positive entitlements through
an interim monetary relief order related to a) maintenance for the victim or her
children, b) compensation for physical injury including medical expenses, c)
compensation for mental torture/emotional distress, d) compensation for loss of
earning, e) compensation for loss due to destruction, damage, removal of any
property from her possession or control. Thus, the Act for the first time goes
beyond the framework of mere punishment to the offenders and tries rather to
protect women from violence at home.
The orders passed by the Magistrate may be of interim, final and ex-
parte in nature. In addition to the primary relief and remedies granted by the
Act, it also confers on the Magistrate the power to grant interim order/relief
134
Supra n. 19 S.21.
135
Id., s. 21 deals with orders for temporary custody at the time of granting protection orders.
136
Id., s.22.
whenever he deems just, in any proceedings before him under the Act 137. Since
the final order in a case may take a long time, the court can pass an interim
order (when the proceedings are pending) to prevent further violence and
provide immediate reliefs to the affected woman, including the right of
residence.
The Act envisages that an appeal may be preferred within 30 days to the
139
Court of Sessions from any order passed by a Magistrate under the Act .
One of the pivotal purpose of the Act being restoring marital harmony, it
provides that if the magistrate, on the receipt of an application from the
aggrieved person or the respondent and is satisfied that there is a change in the
circumstances requiring alteration, modification, or revocation of any order
137
Id., s.23(1). Sulochana v. Kuttappan (2007) Cri.L.J 2057; Chithrangathan v. Seema I(2008)
D.M.C. 365.
138
Id.,s.23(2).
139
Id.,s.29.
previously made under this Act, he/ she may pass such orders as deemed
appropriate140.
140
Id.,s.25(2).See Shri.AmitSundra v. SheetalKhanna 2008 Cri.L.J. 66.
Supra n. 19 s.12.
142
Id.,s.27.
143
Id., s.28.
Protection of women from Domestic Violence Rules,2006 r.12 Means of service of notices.-
(1) The notice for appearance in respect of the proceedings under the Act shall contain the
names of the person alleged to have committed domestic violence, the nature of domestic
violence and such details which may facilitate the identification of person concerned.
(2) The service of notices shall be made in the following manner, namely:-
The notices in respect of the proceedings under the Act shall be served by the Protection
Officer or any other person directed by him to serve the notice, on behalf of the Protection
Officer, at the address where the respondent is stated to be ordinarily residing in India by the
complainant or aggrieved person or where the respondent is stated to be gainfully employed by
the complainant or aggrieved person, as the case may be.
The notice shall be delivered to any person in charge of such place at the moment and in case
of such delivery not being possible it shall be pasted at a conspicuous place on the premises.
Magistrate to the Protection Officer who shall serve it on the respondent and on
any other person as directed by the magistrate within a maximum period of two
days. Counseling order can be directed only after passing an order for interim
relief. As to the intricate details of appointing a counselor and as to the role to
For serving the notices under section 13 or any other provision of the Act, the provisions under
Order V of the Civil Procedure Code, 1908 (5 of 1908) or the provisions under Chapter VI of
the Code of Criminal Procedure, 1973 (2 of 1974) as far as practicable may be adopted.
any order passed for such service of notices shall entail the same consequences, as an order
passed under Order V of the Civil Procedure Code, 1908 or Chapter VI of the Code of Criminal
Procedure, 1973, respectively, depending upon the procedure found efficacious for making an
order for such service under section 13 or any other provision of the Act and in addition to the
procedure prescribed under the Order V or Chapter VI, the court may direct any other steps
necessary with a view to expediting the proceedings to adhere to the time limit provided in the
Act.
On statement on the date fixed for appearance of the respondent, or a report of the person
authorized to serve the notices under the Act, that service has been effected appropriate orders
shall be passed by the court on any pending application for interim relief, after hearing the
complainant or the respondent, or both.
When a protection order is passed restraining the respondent from entering the shared
household or the respondent is ordered to stay away or not to contact the petitioner, no action
of the aggrieved person including an invitation by the aggrieved person shall be considered as
waiving the restraint imposed on the respondent, by the order of the court, unless such
protection order is duly modified in accordance with the provisions of sub-section (2) of
section 25.
Id., R.13. Appointment of Counselors.-(1) A person from the list of available Counsellors forwarded
by the Protection Officer, shall be appointed as a Counsellor, under intimation to the aggrieved
person.
The following persons shall not be eligible to be appointed as Counselors in any proceedings,
namely:- (i) any person who in interested or connected with the subject matter of the dispute or
is related to any one of the parties or to those who represent them unless such objection is
waived by all the parties in writing.
any legal practitioner who has appeared for the respondent in the case or any other suit or
proceedings connected therewith.
(3) The Counselors shall as far as possible be women.
146
Id., r.14. Procedure to be followed by Counselors.-(1) The Counselor shall work under the
general supervision of the court or the Protection Officer or both.
The Counselor shall convene a meeting at a place convenient to the aggrieved person or both
the parties.
The factors warranting counseling shall include the factor that the respondent shall furnish an
undertaking that he would refrain from causing such domestic violence as complained by the
complainant and in appropriate cases an undertaking that he will not try to meet, or
communicate in any manner through letter or telephone, electronic mail or through any
medium except in the counseling proceedings before the counselor or as permissibly by law or
order of a court of competent jurisdiction.
The Counselor shall conduct the counseling proceedings bearing in mind that that the
counseling shall be in the nature of getting an assurance, that the incidence of domestic
violence shall not get repeated.
The respondent shall not be allowed to plead any counter justification for the alleged act of
domestic violence in counseling the fact that and any justification for the alleged act of
domestic violence in counseling the fact that and any justification for the act of domestic
violence by the respondent is not allowed to be a part of the Counseling proceeding should be
made known to the respondent, before the proceeding begin.
The respondent shall furnish an undertaking to the Counselor that he would refrain from
causing such domestic violence as complained by the aggrieved person and in appropriate
cases an undertaking that he will not try to meet, or communicate in any manner through letter
or telephone, e-mail, or through any other medium except in the counseling proceedings before
the Counselor.
If the aggrieved person so desires, the Counselor shall make efforts of arriving at a settlement
of the matter.
The limited scope of the efforts of the Counselor shall be to arrive at the understanding of the
grievances of the aggrieved person and the best possible redressal of her grievances and the
efforts shall be to focus on evolving remedies or measures for such redressal.
The Counselor shall strive to arrive at a settlement of the dispute by suggesting measures for
redressal of grievances of the aggrieved person by taking into account the measures or
remedies suggested by the parties for counseling and reformulating the terms for the
settlement, wherever required.
The Counselor shall not be bound by the provisions of the Indian Evidence Act, 1872 or the
Code of Civil Procedure, 1908, or the Code of Criminal Procedure, 1973, and his action shall
be guided by the principles of fairness and justice and aimed at finding way to bring an end
domestic.
violence to the satisfaction of the aggrieved person and in making such an effort the Counselor
shall give due regard to the wishes and sensibilities of the aggrieved person.
The Counselor shall submit his report to the Magistrate as expeditiously as possible for
appropriate action.
In the event the Counselor arrives at a resolution of the dispute, he shall record the terms of
settlement and get the same endorsed by the parties.
The court may, on being satisfied about the efficacy of the solution and after making a
preliminary enquiry from the parties and after, recording reasons for such satisfaction, which
may include undertaking by the respondents to refrain from repeating acts of domestic
violence, admitted to have been committed by the respondents, accept the terms with or
without conditions.
The court shall, on being so satisfied with the report of counseling, pass an order, recording the
terms of the settlement or an order modifying the terms of the settlement on being so requested
by the aggrieved person, with the consent of the parties.
In cases, where a settlement cannot be arrived at in the counseling proceedings, the Counselor
shall report the failure of such proceedings to the Court and the court shall proceed with the
case in accordance with the provisions of the Act.
task of the Counselor as per the Rules is to bring out an effective remedy to the
parties concerned and to prevent the violence.
Other options with the Magistrate are direct either of the parties ,singly
or jointly, to undergo counseling; seek assistance of a person ,preferably a
woman ,engaged in promotion of family welfare, for assisting him/her in
discharging his/her functions and conduct proceedings in camera. The
aggrieved person in the meantime has the right to reside in a shared household,
whether or not she has any right, title or beneficial interest in the house and
shall not be evicted. In the interim period of disposal of case, the Magistrate,
after giving both parties an opportunity of being heard, and satisfied that
domestic violence has taken place, can pass a protection order, or a residence
order, or direct the respondent to pay the aggrieved person monetary relief and
in addition, can pass compensation orders, custody orders and ex-parte orders.
children and assist the Court in the enforcement of the orders passed 147. No
order can be passed under the Act directing a woman to remove herself from
the shared household. The Magistrate may impose any additional conditions or
pass any other direction which he may deem reasonably necessary to protect or
to provide for the safety of the aggrieved person or any child of hers. The
Magistrate shall ensure that a copy of any such order shall be given free-of-cost
The record of proceedings shall not be deemed to be material on record in the case on the basis
of which any inference may be drawn or an order may be passed solely based on it.
The Court shall pass an order s. 25, only after being satisfied that the application for such an
order is not vitiated by force, fraud or coercion or any other factor and the reasons for such
satisfaction shall be recorded in writing in the order, which may include any undertaking or
surety given by the respondent.
147
Supra n, 19, s. 10
to the parties. If the protection order has been breached, it shall be punished
with either imprisonment or fine or both as earlier narrated.
The Central and State Government shall take measures to ensure that
provisions of this Act are given wide publicity through media; Central and
State government officials including Police officers, members of judicial
service etc., are given periodic sensitization and awareness trainings on issues
addressed by this Act; and also to ensure that there is effective coordination
between the services provided by concerned Ministries and Departments
dealing with law, home affairs, health and human resources, and that there is a
periodic review of the same.
charged with the duty to combat domestic violence. Therefore the Act to an
While a range of civil remedies are provided for under the law, which an
aggrieved person may choose according to her best interests, criminal sanctions
are intended at providing a greater deterrent effect among the perpetrators. The Act
provides that in case a protection order is breached it shall amount to a cognizable
149
and non-bailable offence and the aggressor shall be punishable with
imprisonment ,which may extendto one year or with a fine ,which may extend to
150
Rs.20,000/- or with both . Any such breach shall be tried by the Magistrate who
151
passed the order .The Rules prescribe the manner in which a breach of order is
152
to be handled by the Magistrate or by the Protection Officer as the case may be .
Moreover the Court may concludethat
Annex 4:prepared by Center for World Solidarity as part of the public Awareness Campaign on the
Domestic Violence Act,2005, p.222.
149
Supra n. 19, s.32(1).
150
Id.,s.31(1).
151
Id., s.31(2).
152
Protection of women from Domestic Violence Rules,2006 r.15. Breach of Protection
Orders.-(1) An aggrieved person may report a breach of protection order or an interim
protection order to the Protection Officer.
Every report referred to in sub-rule (1) shall be in writing by the informant and duly signed by
her.
The Protection Officer shall forward a copy of such complaint with a copy of the protection
order of which a breach is alleged to have taken place to the concerned Magistrate for
appropriate orders.
The Aggrieved person may, if she so desires, make a complaint of breach of protection order or
interim protection order directly to the Magistrate or the Police, if she so chooses.
If, at any time after a protection order has been breached, the aggrieved person seeks his
assistance, the protection officer shall immediately rescue her by seeking help from the local
police station and assist the aggrieved person to lodge a report to the local police authorities in
appropriate cases.
When charges are framed under section 31 or in respect of offences under section 498A of the
Indian Penal Code, 1860 (45 of 1860), or any other offence not summarily triable, the Court
may separate the proceedings for such offences to be tried in the manner prescribed under Code
of Criminal Procedure, 1973 (2 of 1974) and proceed to summarily try the offence of the
breach of (7) Any resistance to the enforcement of the orders of the Court under the Act by the
respondent or any other person purportedly acting on his behalf shall be deemed to be a breach
of protection order or an interim protection order covered under the Act.
such an offence has been committed upon the sole testimony of the aggrieved
thereto. The stress on more effective protection brings within its gamut the
need for the country to resort to more stringent measures to combat the
problem of domestic violence in India. These words in the Act acknowledges
the existence of existing old judicial remedies available in the context of
Criminal law like the manifestations like assault, grievous hurt etc. in the India
penal Code and the specific remedies provided under section 498A of the same
Code. The Act intends to itself to prove itself more serious about the issue and
to tackle the same. The protection of women from domestic violence is not the
sole goal but a holistic view is adopted in the Preamble to show the eagerness
in promoting the rights guaranteed under the Constitution to the women who
are victims. The intention behind is not to take cognizance of the criminal act
of domestic violence but overall promotion of rights guaranteed to the women
in India. This objective legitimately takes care of the different types of acts
155
recognized as domestic violence in the Act .It takes into account the
multifaceted violations of human rights of women victims.
The Act provides a temporary or urgent relief from a violent atmosphere
at home. It gives a broad definition of domestic violence as including physical,
sexual, verbal, emotional and economic abuse. It addressed domestic violence
against all women, including wives, mothers, daughters, sisters, widows,
second wives or any women in the home. The law could be used against any
male person in the home, including fathers, brothers, sons, husbands, or any
relative of the woman. The Act gave women the right to reside in the house, to
get protection orders, and to maintenance, custody, compensation, and
protection from violence. It provided women with several mechanisms to
access the law, including the appointment of Judges, Protection Officers,
Service Providers, and Police Officers. It also established the right to a speedy
trial and disposal of cases within 60 days.
156
Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Rules, 2006, gives the details of the
Domestic Incident Report that needs to be filled up by, or on behalf of, the aggrieved woman.
This report makes a list of the categories of verbal and emotional abuse that a woman may
face:1. Accusation/aspersion on your character/conduct, and so on.
Insult for not bringing dowry. 3. Insult for not having a male child. 4. Demeaning, humiliating
remarks/statement.
Ridicule. 6. Name calling. 7. Forcing you not to attend school/college or any other educational
institution.8. Preventing you from taking up a job. 9. Preventing you from leaving the house.
10. Preventing you from meeting any particular person. 11. Forcing you to get married again
against your will. 12. Preventing you from marrying a person of your choice.13. Forcing you to
marry a person of his/their choice.
157
Before the Act was passed the options open to the women suffering domestic violence were
unrealistic. It was difficult to imagine any marriage surviving criminal trial and imprisonment.
It was a choice between tolerating the violence or ending the marriage. Now the reliefs under
the Act stand in between the extreme measures relating to crime and divorce and help in
preserving the matrimonial home to the extent possible.
her. Again this is in keeping with the concept that access to justice has to be
democratic.
Counseling envisaged in the Act, can take place at the pre-litigative and
post-litigative stages of proceedings. At the pre-litigative stage, counseling
would aim at restoring the aggrieved womans self- esteem, dignity, provide
psychological support to her and facilitate her to decide whether or not to
pursue a legal recourse. At the litigative stage, counseling would be aimed at
getting the perpetrator to give an undertaking not to inflict further domestic
violence. This form of counseling is important in re-establishing basic trust
and a sense of safety for the woman facing domestic violence. 158 The overall
objective of counseling as envisaged under this law is to prevent any further
acts of violence from being perpetrated. In cases where joint counseling is
ordered, the proceedings take on the complexion of a mediation process.
However, Rule 14 specifies that settlements are to be attempted only at the
159
behest of the aggrieved person.
One of the most important remedies visualized under this law is to stop
violence, particularly violence of emergency nature, and therefore we have the
158
Keynote Address of Ms. Indira Jaising at Making the PWDVA Successful: Second National
Womens Conference, 18th 20th February 2007.
159
See discussions on Staying Alive: First Monitoring & Evaluation Report 2007 on the
Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act 2005, published by the Lawyers Collective,
at pp. 46-47.
stop violence order in the form of protection orders. The intention of course,
is to give a woman facing domestic violence a space free from violence where
160
she can evaluate her options and choose her future course of action . It is
meant to be an immediate and emergency law. The Act works in addition to
other laws and does not make the existing pre 2005 legal regime redundant.
period of limitation.162
The Act is laudable for the recognition of different types of abuses that
are likely to be perpetrated to woman in her natal and matrimonial family. The
courts have on various occasions interpreted a wifes right to reside as being
part of her right to maintenance. But still to provide for this right through a
legislative framework is a laudable leap in ensuring the very right to existence
and survival in the society. The right to reside contemplated under the Act is
irrespective of the pattern of ownership and is over the space where the woman
and the perpetrator of violence have lived together in a domestic relationship.
Through judicial interpretations several significant progressive changes are
coming forth in the status of victims of domestic violence.
This new law put real power in women's hands in a court system which
ought to be committed to using the laws effectively. They provide that women
160
In contrast to existing criminal laws, (in particular S.498A) which is dependent on the state,
the police and prosecution for enforcement, any civil law is victim driven. It can be put into
motion by the aggrieved by direct access to court for relief. A civil law is a far more democratic
form of access to justice.
Supra Ch.4.
Some examples of Supreme Court judgments which have stated this principle are as follows:
Bhagirath Kanoria v. State of Madhya Pradesh, (1984) 2 S.C.C. 222; Mithu Devi v. Siya
Chaudhury,MANU/BH/1083/1974 (Patna High Court) and Golla Seetharamalu v.
GollaRathanamma,MANU/AP/0096/1990(AP HC).
can go back to court to ask the judge to find the man in contempt of court if he
violates such an order. Upon finding him in contempt, the judge can fine the
batterer or send him to jail to convince him there are real penalties for
disobeying the law. The difference between this and a criminal law remedy is
that the woman does not have to convince often recalcitrant police or
prosecutors to take action; she has the right to go to court on her own behalf
without the officials taking any action at all. In addition, once she has the order
she can threaten the batterer, in effect, not to harass her or that she is potent to
take steps to have the respondent thrown in jail.
At a purely theoretical level, the Act has been a colossal leap for the
women of India because it has, for the first time, recognized the fact that Indian
women are not only the victims of individual acts of physical and sexual abuse,
as it is prevalent in many societies, but also victims of a well-established
oppressive social hierarchy that constantly and systematically stunts their
economic growth and perpetuates their dependence on the male members of
their family and has attempted to remedy the situation.
CRI MI NA L
The Act can never be supported under Article 15(1) of the Constitution
of India which talks about the policy of non-discrimination based on sex or any
other kind. It doesnt discuss about the instances of domestic violence faced by
men. The Act can be defended as a social welfare legislation. The Act can be
only defended under the case of Article 15(3) which guarantees protective
discrimination in favour of women and children. Section 3(c) of the Act defines
aggrieved person as any person who is or has been in domestic relationship,
and thus includes wives, ex-wives, live-in partners and even former girlfriends
and also any person related to her. According to the provisions of the Act all the
above women have a right to reside in the house of the accused. Such a
provision of the Act may give rise to impractical circumstances within the
family- living with a mans wife, ex-wife/wives, former girlfriends and their
relatives, all at the same time. Such a situation will lead to a chaotic
unwarranted situation in the Indian cultural milieu.
The right of the woman to reside in the shared household was declared
by law to exist as a protected right for the first time in Indian legal history. The
Act has acknowledged the dangers of a patriarchal set up of matrimonial home
and the consequent dangers to women victims associated with it. The fact of
providing measures like providing shared residence at the cost of the husband
to the women concerned is only a way of making a man moral by policing or
legislation. The relationships mentioned under the Act are too sensitive and
weak that it cannot withstand any coercion behind it. Law can never make a
person behave morally in the society. The sanctions affixed behind the laws in
the society have a deterrent effect but never has it qualified to be a preventive
or restitutive justice to the victim. A victim undergoing the trauma of domestic
violence is to be given a restitutive remedy but the very same remedy in its true
sense is denied to the victim herein by the application of the Act.
The right to reside in a shared household and related residence order has
provided a less extreme remedy than was previously available to a woman who
had to suffer domestic violence and were later thrown away of their
matrimonial homes. Domestic violence pertains to the violence inflicted by the
family of the victim, in such a case it appears to be highly impractical to
implement such residence orders and protection orders as between them. Such
order between them may prove to be ineffective or worse or counterproductive,
thereby further straining the family relationships in the family. Taking into
account the fact that in India concepts like that of matrimonial property, shared
property or concept of trust as between the spouses etc. that exist in English
legal regime is alien. To implement the concept of shared household has led to
many apprehensions.
The new Act seeks to cover the female live-in partner also and thus it
gives, though indirectly, legitimacy to the practice of live together. Giving
legitimacy to the demands made by live in partners akin to the legitimacy of
a legal wife may create problems in the society and family being a specific unit
in it. The practice of live together does not in itself reflect womens liberation
in the Indian context though the fact is that it exists based on the reliable
sources. It may rather promote skepticism in the mind of the people of our
country that a culture of free sex is being propagated and may make the
position of women more vulnerable in a society. The case of famous actress
MANU/SC/0310/2010.
success uncertain. The broad premise in which the Act is envisaged and
understood clearly indicates to the patriarchal and hegemonic relationships
within family relationships in India. The Act definitely speaks out for itself the
protectionist paradigm of the state in any women-related legislation appears to
be the ideology in this particular Act also. The Act creates a departure when it
moves out of the framework of marriage and looks at domestic relationships
which bring within its ambit the specific cultural protest.
This law does not replace existing criminal, family and tort laws.
Instead it works in addition to and complements other laws. The Act recognizes
the need for urgent reliefs to be granted to provide women with a violence-free
residence. Hence, the nature of remedies provided under this law is temporary
in nature; the permanent solution still remains within the framework of
matrimonial laws under which a woman would have to decide on whether or
not to continue in the relationship.
to residence within the Act. There are mainly two legal approaches for women
who had suffered domestic violence, one is filing for divorce through Family
Court, and the other is filing application to Magistrate according to the Act
which might go through criminal legal system. Too many laws on one issue
create lots of confusion in the large number of already illiterate women who are
without any/adequate knowledge of law. It creates confusion for the decision-
making authorities also, notably the judiciary. Consequently there is wider
scope for judicial discretionsomething that appeal to Judges wisdom.
The law is wholly gender specific and rules out any possibility of
domestic violence against a man. The law confers rights in a woman without
imposing any liability, while a man is overburdened with discriminative
liabilities with total denial of rights. A counter argument could be raised at this
point that it is women who are disproportionately vulnerable to violence due to
their position of equality. The Constitution of India allows the state to take
special affirmative measures for women and children in furtherance of the goal
of substantive equality. The Act nowhere ignores violence that man face in
intimate relationships. For them the general laws of the land are available for
seeking legal redress. A separate law for women is to correct historical
disadvantages by creating means to facilitate a womans access to justice as a
step to overcome inequalities.
effective provisions of child rights and security under the Act to prevent the
vulnerability of the children.
164
The frame work for model legislation on domestic violence acts as
the source of framework for the new Act in India .The relationships that are to
be regulated within the Act to combat domestic violence includes female
household workers. But the category of house maids does not find mention in
the Act in India. The acts of domestic violence in the framework include
marital rape which does not find mentioning in the Act in India. Instead the
ambit of marital rape is confined within the sexual abuse concept included
under the definition of domestic violence.
Report of the Special Rapporteur on violence against women, its causes and consequences, Ms.
RadhikaCoomaraswamy, submitted in accordance with Commission on Human Rights
resolution 1995/85-
http://www.unhchr.ch/Huridocda/Huridoca.nsf/0/0a7aa1c3f8de6f9a802566d700530914 Last
visited on 31st May,2012
This is also the law in India now; with the Honble Supreme Court in Sandhya
ManojWankhade v. ManojBhimraoWankhade,(2011) 3 S.C.C. 650. clarifying that woman can
be respondents in an application under the PWDVA. The case is discussed in detail in the
seventh chapter of the thesis.
This Act should have ideally included stringent penal provisions for
curtailing the instances of abuse and mishandling, but herein, instead various
opportunities have been made available which can ultimately lead to its grave
misuse and can thus act as a catalyst for breaking homes. Thus, this Act does
not contain any provisions for creating awareness or for strengthening and
preserving family as an institution or even providing chances for reconciliation
or even scope for improvement to the husband. There is no mentioning in the
Act as to the constitution of an agency which would essentially work to check
whether the complaints are frivolous or not. At the same time creation of a new
law despite the existing legal provisions on the issue of violence against
women, including domestic violence reflects the gravity of the problem. Taking
into account this fact the state should have given emphasis to the overall
(socio-economic and political) empowerment of women to strengthen their
position in society and family. However, one may see the apathy of the
government towards the issue of empowerment of women. Law, though very
important, is not the complete solution for such problems.
a violence-free society166.
166.Rachana Kaushal- Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act 2005An Appraisal,
48(11) Mainstream Weekily 32 (2010), New Delhi. Also see Home page>Mainstream
Experiences167
The dominant family structure in the western democracies like U.K and
U.S.A is the nuclear family with its gendered power structure. Indian culture is
reflected in the cohesiveness of family units and familial relationships. The
formal relationship between religions, theology and the State is different as
168
well .Feminism has taken deep roots there in a faster pace unlike the Indian
counterpart. Law in the western developed countries like U.K and U.S.A is
often manifested as a protective mechanism to redress the lack of citizenship
and corresponding lack of power. Indian personal law formally institutionalizes
Hindu, Parsi, Muslim and Christian religious doctrine in marriage and divorce
law applicable to each group. In India women have equality under the
Constitution of India. The two sets of law in India highlight contradictions in
169
womens status and power .
There have been experiments in countries like USA and UK where the
ultimate decision to prosecute has been put on the law enforcement agencies
regardless of the level of the co-operation of the victim, for example the no-
drop prosecution policies or mandatory arrests. But such a prescription needs
170
careful attention and consideration before being applied in India . This could
severely strain the already burdened judiciary, making infinite demand as on
the human and fiscal resources of the state. The complexities of the situation
surrounding the average Indian victimized woman are to be understood in this
Weekily>2010> Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act 2005-An Appraisal. Last
visited on11th November, 2011.
167
The comparison mentioned herein is with the strategic models as envisaged by U.S.A and
U.K that is explained in detail in the fourth chapter of this thesis.
168
Religion and family are supposed to be private/personal domains in the western countries.
The relationship between state and citizens is not entirely secular.
169
Diane Mitsch Bush- Womens movements and State policy reform aimed at domestic
violence against women: A Comparison of the consequences of movement mobilisation in the
U.S and India., 6(4) Gender and Society 592(1992).
170
See Discussions by SudhirKakkar in Intimate Relation: Exploring Indian Sexuality, Penguin
Books, NewDelhi (1989),p.29.
Rights of Women against Domestic Violence-The Law and Emerging
Challenges 276
The Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act,
2005 An Appraisal
context. The culture specific attitudes of the country like India and the trends of
family courts established in India are inclined towards the prioritization of
interests of family over and above interests and security of women.
India has also resorted to alternative justice delivery systems and multi -
agency co-ordination and responses in dealing with the problem of domestic
violence. The State intervention has been multi-pronged and mediated through
executive and judicial agencies that include the Family Courts, Legal Aid
Legal Services Authority Act,1987,s 12 says: The Act provides the criteria for entitlement to legal
service as follows:(i) A member of schedule cast and schedule tribe.(ii) A victim of trafficking
human being or beggar as referred to Article 23 of the Constitution.(iii) A women or child.(iv) A
disable person.(v) Victim of mass disaster, ethnic violence, flood, drought, industrial disaster,(vi)
Industrial workman,(vii) Person in custody,(viii) person having annual income less than nine
thousand or higher as prescribed by the State Govt. A person desires to get legal aid must satisfy any
or all of the criteria having a prima-facie case.
172
Counselling as a Police Role - Counselling is the first response of the Crimes against
Women Cells in domestic matters. Many families in India still continue to live as joint families
and counselling often involves other members of the family besides the immediate
protagonists. The aim of counseling continues to be to remove irritants in the marriage, to
prevent abuse or to ensure that there is no further abuse, and to secure the position of the
woman in the marriage. The Crisis Intervention Centres have been set up and associate social
workers, doctors, lawyers, psychologists and prosecutors with their functioning. A significant
service started by the Crimes against Women Cell is a 24 hour helpline that responds to callers
in distress. For details See. http://www.unafei.or.jp/english/pdf/PDFrms/no69/05P77-84.pdf.
Last visited on 23 rd February, 2012.
173
Nishi Mitra, Domestic Violence As a Public Issue A Review of Responses, Unit for Womens
Studies, Tata Institute of Social Sciences,Mumbai (2000), p.85.
speedy disposal of cases under Legal Service Authority Act, 1987, which has
its roots in the traditional Nyaya Panchayats. The essential features of PMLA
are amicable mutual settlement and flexibility in functioning. The NGOs in
association with District Legal Aid and Advisory Board, activists, advocates
and others, organize Parivarik Mahila LokAdalats with the Commission's
174
financial assistance .
The Central Social Welfare Board serves as an apex organization at the
national level for funding for welfare activities at the state level is channeled to
the grass roots level voluntary agencies through a network of state welfare
boards. Short stay homes and family counseling centres across the country
receive support from this source. The shelter homes in India fall short of good
practice due mainly to the lack of holistic treatment of womens concerns.
Safety is often interpreted in manner that restricts individuals mobility.
Moreover the rehabilitation programmes are not structured in a way that it
would encourage the evolution of a woman from being a victim to a survivor of
domestic violence. The Indian experience makes a sharp contrast of Indian
victimized women to the US and UK experience of survivors of the crime.
174
http://ncw.nic.in/frmRes_PMLA.aspx. Last visited on 13th July,2013.
175
See supra Ch.4 for discussions on community intervention strategies in U.S,.A and U.K.
specific) to residence based on the nature of relationship that she shares with
One of the problems confronting the idea behind the Family courts
established in India in 1984 has the set back of promoting the value of
integration of family and the institution of marriage. Extreme case of domestic
violence inflicted on the partners or individuals often leads to the notion that
staying apart or disintegration of a violent family unit is desirable or
favourable. Gender sensitive courts can deal with such issues more effectively.
The concept of specialized domestic violence courts can be emulated in the
Indian context.
176
Amarsanaa Darisuren and Sarah Fortuna (Eds.,) Domestic Violence Legislation and its
Implementation An analysis for ASEAN countries based on international standards and good
practices ,UNIFEM and Lawyers Collective Womens Rights Initiative, India-, (2009) available
at http://cedaw-seasia.org/docs/DomesticViolenceLegislation.pdf last visited on 18-2-2012.
177
Supra Ch.4.
Domestic Violence Act, 2005179 of India directs the Central Government and
every State Government to take measures to ensure that the provisions of the
Act are given wide publicity through public media, including television, radio
and print media, at regular intervals.
Examples from other jurisdictions:-Special investigation services have been organized in many
police stations in Italy to respond more adequately to women who report sexual violence. In
Jamaica, a sex crimes unit has been established within the police force, with the objective of
creating an environment that encourages women complainants/survivors to report incidents of
sexual assault and child abuse; effectively investigating complaints of abuse; and offering
counseling and therapy services. The National Guidelines for Prosecutors in Sexual Offence
Cases (1998) of the Department of Justice in South Africa state that a specialist prosecutor is
the ideal person for this type of case.
179
Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act,2005, s.11.
.. ..
180
Supra n. 168, p.592.
Chapter 7
JUDICIAL DECISIONS ON THE PROTECTION
OF WOMEN FROM DOMESTIC VIOLENCE
ACT, 2005A CRITIQUE
Violence Act20051, provides remedy in the civil law to the victims of domestic
violence. On the one hand, the Act has made significant improvements to the
existing laws pertaining to violence against women, and has effectively linked
all forms of domestic violence to demands for dowry. On the other hand, the
development of the Act through legal interpretation appears to be marred by
confusion and inconsistency. The enactment has led to a flood gate of
litigations raising issues of womens rights within the precincts of the domestic
domain. Very few cases have come up to the Apex Court. Each judgment
passed by the High Courts has aided in clarifying, expanding and interpreting
provisions of the Act. The judgments selected for examination under this
chapter are those issues that have been frequently raised before the various
courts and provide clarity on fundamental provisions of the Act.
The judgments from various High Courts are analysed through the lens
of human rights norms in order to examine whether the objectives of Act are
1
Hereinafter referred to as the Act.
The Act takes into account the fact that women are disproportionately
affected by domestic violence and hence falls under the category of legislation
The Constitutionality of the Act was under test before the Delhi High
Court in Aruna Pramod Shah v. Union of India3.In this case a writ petition was
filed by the mother-in-law seeking to quash proceedings under the Act initiated
against her in a lower court. It was argued that the Act offended Article 14 of
Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act,2005, s.2 (a) defines an aggrieved person
as any woman who is, or has been, in a domestic relationship with the respondent and who
alleges to have been subjected to any act of domestic violence.
3
WP. Cr. 425/2008, Del. Judgment dated 7 thApril, 2008. (Vikramajit Sen and P.K. Bhasin, JJ.)
the Constitution of India because it provided protection only to women and not
to men. The petition challenged the constitutionality of the Act on two grounds.
Firstly, the gender-specific nature of the Act, i.e.by excluding men, is arbitrary
and, hence, violative of Article 14 of the Constitution. The Court dismissed this
contention on the grounds that, there is a difference between class legislation
and reasonable classification. Secondly the petitioner contended that the
placing of relationships in the nature of marriage on par with married status
in section 2(f) of the Act leads to the derogation of the rights of the legally-
wedded wife. The Court rejected the second contention by holding that there
was no reason why equal treatment should not be accorded to a wife as well as
a woman who has been living with a man as his common law wife or even as
a mistress.
4
Id.,para 4.Emphasis added.
This is the first case to address the issue of constitutionality of the law.
More crucially, it serves as a model in the manner in which the object and spirit
of the Act has been understood and treated by the court. In its judgment, the
Delhi High Court clearly articulated the purpose and elements of formulating a
law as a special measure under Article 15(3) of the Indian Constitution, and
reaches the conclusion that the gender-specific nature of the Act is mandated in
the context of the purpose of achieving equality of status for women.
5
Dennison Paulraj v.Union of India, A.I.R.2009 (Noc) 2540 (Mad), per Venkataraman,J.
application filed by his wife a writ petition was filed by the husband and his
family members challenging constitutionality of the Act and alleging that the
proceedings initiated in the lower court was a complete abuse of process of law.
Sections 4, 12, 18, 19, 23 & 29 of the Act were challenged as providing
preferential treatment to the wife and hence, violated the right to life and
liberty of the husband and his relatives. Section 23 of the Act in particular was
challenged as arbitrary and conferring unrestricted powers on the Magistrate.
The High Court of Madras rejected those arguments and held that giving
certain preferential treatment to the wife and treating them as a special category
couldnot be termed as violative of either Article 14 or Article 16 of the
Constitution of India. Following the case of Aruna Pramod Shah the Court
further held:
untenable.6
The decision of the Madras High Court in upholding the validity of the
Act is a pointer to the right direction. The approach to the issue of giving
retrospective application becomes significant not only for the recognition that
part of the cause of action arose after the commencement of the Act and that
6
(2008) 2 M.L.J. 389 para 8.
the penalty provided in the law is for breach of court orders, but also because
the Court went on to reiterate that it is, competent to take cognizance of the act
of domestic violence committed even prior to the Act came into force and pass
necessary protection orders.
Marriages are performed as per customary rights and there is seldom any clear-cut proof that a
marriage ceremony has been performed. Furthermore, even if documentary proof of a marriage
exists, once a woman initiates proceedings in court against her partner, it often becomes
virtually impossible for her to return to her matrimonial household to reclaim such
documentation.
The judiciary has provided a wise and tactful solution to the problem by
acknowledging and upholding the right of maintenance of women victims in
fake and bigamous marriages. Under the provision of this Act, any woman who
claims relief such as protection orders, restraining orders or even maintenance,
need not prove the validity of her marriage.
8
The Act seeks to define the concept domestic relationship as a relationship
between persons who live or have at any point of time, lived together in a shared
household, when they are related by consanguinity, marriage or through a
relationship in the nature of marriage, adoption or are family members living
together as a joint family. Under this definition live-in relationships are recognized
in the phrase relationships in the nature of marriage. Women in live-in
relationships are supposed to receive the same protection as wives when it comes
to domestic violence. Domestic relationships protect women of fraudulent or
bigamous marriages or in marriages invalid in law. This marks the beginning of the
legislative recognition shown to couples choosing to cohabit rather than marry
under Indian law. An array of judgments has come in the way of interpreting live
9
in relationships by Indian judiciary .
10
Madras High Court in the case of M. Palani v. Meenakshi had discussed
at length the need for granting maintenance to an illegally married wife taking into
account the beneficial objective envisaged under the Act. Petitioner had filed a suit
for declaration that he and the respondent were not married to each other and for a
consequential order of injunction restraining her from representing and receiving
the benefits as his wife and for costs. In the said proceedings, the respondent filed
an interim application for maintenance under the Protection of
8
Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act,2005, ss.2,2(f).
9
A. Dinohamy v. W.L. Blahamy, A.I.R. 1927 PC 185; Mohabhat Ali v. Mohammad Ibrahim
Khan, A.I.R.1929 PC 135; Gokal Chand v.ParvinKumari, A.I.R. 1952 S.C. 231:Badri Prasad
v. Dy. Director of Consolidation, A.I.R. 1978 S.C. 1557:S. P. S. Balasybramanyamv.
Suruttayan, 1994 (1) S.C.C. 460:Ranganath Parmeshwar Panditrao v. Eknath Gajanan
Kulkarni, 1996 (7) S.C.C. 681: Lata Singh v. State of U.P. and Another, A.I.R. 2006 S.C. 2522:
Tulsa and Others v. Durghatiya and Others, AIR 2008 S.C. 1193; S. Khushboo v. Kaniammal,
(2010)5 S.CC. 600.
10
M. Palani v.Meenakshi, A.I.R 2008 Mad 162, per Venkataraman, J.
Women from Domestic Violence Act. The Family Court, Chennai, granted her
Rs.1,000/- per month as interim maintenance.
This was challenged by the appellant, who contended that the woman
was not entitled to any maintenance under the provisions of the Act since they
had not lived together at any point of time as a husband and wife. However, he
admitted that they had voluntary sexual contact but alleged that the woman had
voluntarily submitted to sexual contact despite knowing fully well that he did
not believe in the institution of marriage and that the woman herself had not
insisted on a formal marriage. The mere proximity for the sake of mutual
pleasure can never be called a domestic relationship, contended the appellant
The High Court rejected those contentions and held that:
The provision does not say that they should have lived together
for a particular periodthe plaint and counter affidavit will make
it clear that petitioner and respondent had a close relationship and
had sex one can infer that both of them seems to have shared
household and lived together at least of the time having sex by
them.11
The Court again emphasised that the Act applies even when there is
consensual sex between a man and a woman, without promise of marriage. The
Court here has taken note of the specific facts and circumstances of the case
and in the process of beneficial interpretation has upheld the maintenance relief
to the respondent to make sure that the interest of women victims of bigamous
marriages are not at stake
11
Id., para.13.Emphasis added.
12
A.I.R. 2008 Delhi 1. (A.K. Sikri and Aruna Suresh, JJ).
divorce from his first wife. After a few years, the parties filed separate
proceedings, the husband for a divorce and the wife for maintenance under
section 18 of the Hindu Adoptions and Maintenance Act, 1956. Under section
18, maintenance can only be claimed by a Hindu wife. During the course of
the proceedings under the statute, it came to light that the ex-parte divorce
granted to the husband for his first marriage had been set aside. The second
wifes petition for maintenance under the statute was, therefore, dismissed on
the grounds that the marriage between the parties was not legally valid because
the husband had an earlier subsisting marriage. The dismissal of this petition
was appealed before the Delhi High Court by relying upon the provisions of the
Act. The Court held that while existing case law under the statute excluded the
granting of maintenance to the second wife where there was a subsisting
legally valid first marriage, the trial court had, failed to recognise the fact that
the decree of divorce was in operation on the day that the second marriage was
solemnised, making the second marriage legally valid.
The Court went on to discuss the objective and intent behind section 18
of the Hindu Adoptions and Maintenance Act, 1956 and held:
13
Id., para.15.
least for the purposes of claiming maintenance under section 18 of the statute,
was to be treated as legally wedded14. In arriving at its decision, the Court also
placed reliance upon sections 2(a), 18, 20 and 26 of the Act.
This judgment of the Delhi High Court marked an important step in
recognizing the legitimate entitlements of a woman who had, in good faith,
entered into a relationship in the nature of marriage. The court had tried to give
effect to the beneficial construction of section 18 of the Hindu Adoptions and
Maintenance Act, 1956 with the support of objective and provisions under the
Act. And hence it becomes a judicious blend of judicial reasoning providing
access to justice for the women victims. It must be emphasized that the Act, in
including relationships in the nature of marriage within its purview, sought to
ensure protection to women in similar situations. This decision reiterated the
fact that no woman should be denied the protection of laws when facing
domestic violence.
14
Id., para.16.
A.I.R. 2008 Delhi 7, 148 (2008) D.L.T. 522, I (2008) D.M.C. 529.
16
Savitha Ben Somabhai Bhatiya v. State of Gujarat ,(2005) 3 S.C.C. 636.
17
Id.,para 9 and 10.
Anr18.The case was about a widow with two daughters, who had married her
husbands younger brother as per the custom of the community. In such
marriages generally, Saptapadi was not performed. As per the custom of
Kushwaha community, the marriage was performed through katha and sindur.
When her husband deserted her, the wife filed for maintenance. The trial court
upheld her plea but the High Court held that her marriage was not valid since
Saptapadi was not performed. A Special Leave Petition was filed by the
appellant against the judgment of the High Court upholding the respondents
contention that he was not the husband of the appellant, and therefore, she was
not entitled to maintenance from him, since only legally married women could
claim this under the provisions of section 125 Criminal Procedure Code.
The Supreme Court examined in detail the provisions of the Act and
noted that the Act had given expanded interpretation to the term domestic
relationship. The wide coverage under the definition of domestic relationship,
according to the judgment, is the most significant provision under the Act. The
effect of such inclusion ensures that women in live-in relationships are also
entitled to all the reliefs given in the said Act. The judgment concluded that if
monetary relief and compensation can be awarded in cases of live in
relationships under the Act of 2005, they should also be allowed in proceedings
under section 125 of Cr PC. Thus the Court upheld the claim of maintenance
sought on the ground that parties though not married, have lived together for a
long period.
This decision is significant from the point of view of the Act as it draws
directly on the relevant provisions from the Act to expand the category of
relationships which could legitimately benefit from the maintenance provisions
under section 125 Cr PC, by interpreting the basic social intent and purpose
behind both enactments., The inclusion of relationship in the nature of
marriage, within the definition of domestic relationship under the Act, has
generated some debate and criticism.
19
In Azimuddin Abdul Aziz v. State of UP while interpreting the word
have at any point lived together, the Allahabad High Court opined that as per
the expression have at any point lived together, immediate residence of the
two parties is not required. Prior acts of violence will be taken into account for
filing an application under the Act.
Despite the fact that the Act recognises the rights of women in informal
or unmarried relationships, the validity of marriage continues to be raised as a
delay or harassment tactic by many respondents under the Act. A holding of the
20
High Court of Kerala in the case of Thanseel v. Sini is an example of the
Courts firm stance against using the issue of the validity of a marriage as a
delaying tactic in the proceedings. In this case, the petitioner contended that
there was no valid marriage subsisting between him and the respondent and
that to be addressed as a preliminary issue in the proceedings. Rejecting his
contentions, the Court ruled that, the request to decide questions as preliminary
issues based on disputed facts could not obviously be entertained and the
Magistrate has to consider the entire question and give decision as mandated
under section 12 (5) of the Act within a period of 60 days from the date of the
first hearing.
In both the above judgments21, the Delhi High Court has clearly
intended to establish the jurisprudence that women who are not considered to
be lawfully wedded or who are referred to as second wife are entitled to the
same legal protection insofar as there is fraud committed or where the nature of
the relationship clearly warrants legal entitlements. These judgments strengthen
the statutory protection provided to women in a relationship in the
19
MANU/UP/0238/2008.
20
Thanseel v. Sini WP(C) No. 7450/ 2007, 6/3/2007, Ker.
21
Suresh Khullars and Narinder Pal Kaur Chawlas decisions.
nature of marriage under the Act and offer comprehensive guidelines to courts
on one of the ways in which the provision is to be interpreted.
The judgment referred to the right of maintenance under the Act which
is significant and it indicates an acknowledgment by the court that the Act
addressed such situations where the woman was admittedly vulnerable but had
no recourse to legal remedies under other existing laws.
22
Criminal Revision Application No. 317/2006.
23
(2010)10 S.C.C. 469. (Markandey Katju and T S Thakur JJ).
However, in doing so, the court sought to discuss sexual mores and the
amoral nature of live-in relationships In a feudal society, sexual relationship
between man and woman outside marriage was totally taboo and regarded with
disgust and horror30At the same time Court acknowledged that: However
Indian society is changing and this change has been reflected and recognized
Act, 2005.31
Making an attempt to iron out certain ambiguous situations, in order to
be eligible for palimony, a relationship must comply with certain conditions,
above referred. Court in referring to the concept of palimony that existed in
other jurisdiction made passing remarks as to the popular cases in U.S.A 32.As
to the interpretation of object of section.125 Criminal Procedure Code the
33
Court relied on certain Indian cases and held that social purpose and object of
the provision is to prevent vagrancy and destitution. Conscious that the
judgment would exclude many women in live-in relationships from the benefit
of the Domestic Violence Act, 2005, the apex court said it is not for this court
to legislate or amend the law. The parliament has used the expression
relationship in the nature of marriage and not live-in relationship. The court
cannot change the language of the statute, it said.
Manu 5, 160-161.
autonomy and living has led to a floodgate of debates and discussions on the
liberalized alternate marital institutions within the country.
The right to residence provision has been hailed as one of the most
unique and important provisions of the Act. It enables a victim of domestic
violence to take recourse to independent relief that provides for protective
injunctions against violence, dispossession from the matrimonial home and
alternate residence. While the Act does not create any new rights which were
not available to women prior to this enactment through statutory or judge made
laws, it provides a single window and simple procedures for claiming rights
which were scattered under different statutes and legal provisions.
The Act widens the scope of protection against violence beyond the
category of wives and extends it not only to mothers, daughters, and sisters, but
even to women in informal relationships. An entire gamut of women like aged
women, unmarried girls, widows, women whose marriages are suspect due to
legal defect on the ground that essential ceremonies were not performed or that
the man or the woman has an earlier subsisting marriage, are able to seek relief
under this Act.
37
(2005) 3 S.CC. 313, per Lahoti,J.
The right to residence provision under the Act had evolved in the Indian
courts largely within the framework of the Supreme Courts judgment in the
39
case of S.R Batra v. Taruna Batra in 2007. Respondent had married
38
Id., para 33. Emphasis added.
39
S.R Batra v. Taruna Batra, 2007 3 S.C.C. 169, per Markandey Katju. J.
appellants son and started living together at the appellants mothers house.
Appellant filed divorce petition later on. As a counterblast respondent lodged
FIR under section 498A along with other provisions of Indian Penal Code. In
the present case the daughter in law had sought an order to allow her to re-enter
her matrimonial home. The Appellants retaliated by contending that their son
had shifted his residence to a new flat prior to the starting of proceedings.
Temporary Injunction was granted in favour of the respondent by the trial
court. Senior Civil Judge on appeal held that respondent had no right to the
property of appellant other than that of her husband. Respondent filed petition
under Article.227 and High Court gave a judgment in her favour to continue to
reside at the appellants house. Aggrieved by the decision of the High Court,
appellants preferred appeal to Supreme Court.
While ruling against her, the Supreme Court based its judgment on its
40
Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act,2005, s.2(s).
Supra n. 37 para 29.
Id., para 28.
In addition, the Court clarified that that there is no such law in India like
the British Matrimonial Homes Act 1967, and had cautioned against equating a
shared household with a matrimonial home as has been interpreted by the
English Courts. The Supreme Courts narrow interpretation of this otherwise
expansive definition is significant has, to some degree, curbed the potential
misuse of this provision.
Allowing the appeal Court acknowledged the fact that definition under
s.2(s) as to shared household under the Act was not happily worded and
attributed the fault to the clumsy drafting of the legislation and justified their
standpoint by saying that an interpretation best possible to prevent chaos in the
44
society was resorted to by them .
If one strictly adheres to the definition of shared household under the
Act then aggrieved person is entitled to live within the space shared earlier by
her and her husband. The petitioner had lived in the property in question in the
past; hence the said property was her shared household. But the court
overlooked all of that and decided that the property in question neither
belonged to the husband nor was it taken on rent by him nor was it a joint
property of which the husband was a member. It was the exclusive property of
the mother-in law. Hence according to the Apex Court it cannot be called a
shared household as it was not fulfilling the criteria of the section. In this
case45a statutory guarantee of the right to reside in the shared household was
linked to the ownership of the home, rather than the fact of residence in the
joint household. This judgment has curtailed the scope of right to residence
envisaged under the Act.
Judicial emasculation of a law may blunt the social message which the
46
law conveys, thereby diluting its social impact . The Supreme Courts holding
in the above case appears to be an example of this justification. Further the
court by ruling that claim for alternative accommodation can only be made
against the husband and not the in-laws or other relatives has proved
detrimental for women residing in joint family households in which the
husband himself has no legal right to reside by way of tile or interest.
Furthermore, it has become virtually impossible for women who had already
left their households due to violence to gain orders allowing them re-entry into
the household, especially in joint family scenarios. There is no guarantee as to
the security in staying in such violent environment in the in-laws household.
45
(2007) 3 SCC 169.
46
MohiniChatterjee, Feminism and Womens Human Rights,Vol.2,Avishkar Publishers and
Distributors, Jaipur, (2004) p.124.
47
The major struggle for women in England had been to acquire the right to own property
during the subsistence of their marriage and to fight the legal provision which merged their
property with that of their husbands.The attempts to enact Matrimonial Clauses Act, 1857,
awarding limited right of divorce under stringent conditions. But womens right to separate
property after divorce was not acknowledged .Married Womans Property Rights Act,1872
awarded rights over their separate property for women who were legally separated /divorced.
Later the Married Womens property Rights Act 1882 slightly improved the position of married
woman. Finally in 1935,the difference between a married and unmarried woman was abolished
and married women became full owners of their own individual property, even during the
subsistence of marriage. Matrimonial Homes Act in 1967 specifically empowered the courts to
decide the issue of property while dealing with issues of desertion and divorce. Divorce
Reform Act in 1969 introduced the Breakdown theory of divorce. In 1973 provisions of both
the above Acts were incorporated into Matrimonial Causes Act,1973.The Family Law Act of
1996 further altered the position laying emphasis on mediation than contested litigation. These
enactments stipulated that though the courts must give effect to legal rights of the parties they
must also honour the wifes right in equity to reside in the matrimonial home.
48
Appeal from Order No.866 of 2007 in S.C Suit No.3072/2007 with Civil Application
No.1194/2007.
Court rejected her claim on the ground that merely because the wife stayed in
the house of her mother-in-law along with her husband for some time, she did
not accrue a legal right of residence in the said premises. It was not the
property in which the husband had a right. Relying upon the Batra Case,
Bombay High Court held that shared household indicates the house belonging
to or taken on rent by the husband, or the house which belongs to the joint
family of which husband is a member. This decision signals that if the husband
had no legal right over the household the wife has no other recourse but to lean
back on her natal home.
49
(2007) 6 M.L.J. 205 (Mad.).
shared household and it does not depend upon whether she had marked her
Abha Arora v. Angela Sharma51 was another similar case wherein the
wife had claimed right of residence against her mother-in-law, relying upon the
notion of shared household. The mother in law initiated proceedings to restrain
the entry of daughter-in-law into the premises owned by her. The daughter-in-
law failed to obtain a counter injunction for her re-entry. Later the mother-in-
law sold the premises and made an application to the court for permission to
withdraw the proceedings filed by her. The daughter-in-law vehemently
opposed this move as her rights under the Act would be defeated in case of
withdrawal of suit. The High Court rejected her plea and held that since the
property is owned by the mother-in-law, the daughter-in-law cannot claim the
right to residence, as the same is not a shared household under the provisions of
the Act. It was also taken onto consideration by the Court that the daughter-in-
law was not residing in the suit property but instead was residing and
50
Id., para 20.
51
1 (2008) D.M.C. 507 Del.
working in the UK and she had substantial earnings out of it. Subsequently the
proceedings filed by her were dismissed for default, as she did not follow up
the suit. Hence there was no reason for preventing the mother-in-law from
withdrawing her suit and compelling her to proceed with it.
In Neetu Mittal v. Kanta Mittal52, the wife had filed proceedings against
her in-laws seeking an order of permanent injunction under Order 39, Rule 1
and 2 of Civil Procedure Code, and also invoked the relevant provisions for her
right to residence under the Act. The wife admitted that she had been living
separately with her husband and pleaded that that accommodation was not
adequate. The relationship with in- laws was not cordial and the couple were
living separately due to the settlement arrived at, at the police station, between
the parties. Hence, it was held that her staying with the in-laws would be
detrimental to their health and interest, and their right to live with dignity. The
trial court order was affirmed by the High court. Relying upon the Batra case,
the court held that the wifes claim of residence could only stand against her
husband and not against her in-laws.
that she was entitled to the possession of the matrimonial house as per
section.19 of the Act. The High Court upheld the order of the Family Court on
the ground that she could not prove her contribution towards the purchase of
the premises. This decision tends to support the patriarchal set up wherein the
wifes role as an effective contributor to the family earnings goes
unacknowledged. The fact that most women contribute to the matrimonial
home either through their own earnings or through their unpaid labour was
overlooked while ascertaining the right of residence and right to property in
respect of matrimonial home in this case. A restricted scope of the provision of
the shared household is visible from the above judgments which would
drastically curtail the rights of women.
54
In Priya v. Shibu , the High Court of Kerala concluded that a divorced
woman was entitled to reliefs under the Act. In the case of Bharati Naik v.
55
Ramnath Halarnkar , question mooted was whether a divorced woman could
have a right in the matrimonial home. In this case the woman was divorced
way back in 1998. Thus, the question that arose was of the retrospective effect
of the Domestic Violence Act and whether there was any present case of
domestic violence where she complained about etc. The High Court of Bombay
at Goa concluded that a woman who had been divorced for 12 years would be
allowed to receive maintenance under the Act stating that the relationship by
consanguinity, marriage, etc. would be applicable to both the existing
relationship as well as the past relationship and cannot be restricted to only the
existing relationship as otherwise the very intent and purpose of enacting the
said Act would be lost as it then would protect only an aggrieved person who is
having an existing relationship. The Court thus ruled that even a divorced
woman can receive maintenance under Section 12 of the Act.
The pertinent question that arises here is the assimilation of this concept
with practice in Indian society. The situation that emanates from such concepts
54
Priya v. Shibu, MANU/KE/0265/2008, 6/06/2008.
55
BharatiNaik v. Ramnath Halarnkar, Cr. W.P Nos.18/09 and 64/09, Goa 17/02/10.
The case was finally decided on the factual circumstances. The Madhya
Pradesh High Court observed that:
56
Razzak Khan v. Shahnaz Khan, 2008 (4) MPHT 413
of Protection Officer57
The fact situations of the case reveal the patriarchal mindset promoted by
the husbands to deprive the aggrieved party of their entitlements as per the Act.
Nidhi Kumar Gandhi v. The State58, was a case filed in Delhi High
Court by a woman with her minor daughter had been dispossessed. The
husband resisted her claim by stating that the premises belonged to his father
and that he was not residing in the said premises. The wifes contention was
that he shifted his residence only after she had initiated proceedings against
him. In view of this interim orders were passed in her favour. The husband
challenged the orders, relying upon the Batra case and pleaded that the
premises were neither owned nor rented by him, and it was not the joint family
property and thus could not be construed as shared household. In view of this
the Sessions Court varied the residential order passed by Magistrates court. In
appeal, the Delhi High Court restored the orders of the Magistrates court and
observed that it was premature on the part of Sessions Judge to apply the ratio
of Batra case without determining whether in fact, the husbands father owned
the premises and whether the husband had no right to live there. The High
Court also observed that it was inconceivable how at an interlocutory stage, in
view of the mandate under the Act to provide urgent relief, a final
determination on that aspect could be made. Further it was held that rights of
the husbands family were not affected by the order of restoration and the
wifes occupation of the premises. This judgment effectively suggests that the
57
Id., para 15.
58
Nidhi Kumar Gandhi v. The State, MANU/DE/0077/2009;157 (2009) D.L.T. 472.
Batra holding should not be applied in cases where the issue is of urgent
interim residence reliefs and there was no conclusive determination reached as
to the ownership of the property.
The court went on to discuss that in cases where such person has a
coparcenary or inheritance right in the property, such right must be claimed
through a civil suit and not under the Act. Therefore, the court clearly
recognized and specifically excluded instances where the aggrieved woman
may have either temporarily left the household or had been forced out. In such
cases, the right of residence on the basis of a domestic relationship would
continue. The Court sought to distinguish between acts of violence committed
even when the person is living separately and stated that in such cases, the
recourse lies in the IPC and other criminal laws. The reasoning of the court is
to be read in conjunction with the fact that the court categorically upheld the
de- jure right of a woman to reside in the shared household. Any other
interpretation can have the danger of denying the right of residence under the
Act to all those women who falls under domestic relationship but may not be
59
Crl. M.C. No. 3878/2009. In this case, the petitioner filed an application before the trial court
seeking an immediate right to reside and police protection against her brother and his wife. She
contended that being a permanent resident of US, when she came to India, she was not allowed
to enter the premises of her parental house by the brother and his wife. On the other hand, the
brother argued that the premises were owned by his father and himself, and upon the death of
the latter, the share devolved upon the grandson under a will. Further it was argued that the
petitioner had already received consideration for her share in the property.
residing in the shared household, and are subjected to domestic violence within
the four walls.
by the Delhi High Court in Jyotsana Shardav. Gaurav Sharda60.On the issue of
residence order, the husband argued that the wife does not have any right to
stay in an accommodation, which is owned by the mother-in-law. The property
in question was in the joint name of the husband and his mother, although the
wife argued that the entire sale consideration was paid by the husband. The
Court rejected the contention of the husband and held that since it was
established that the property was jointly owned by the husband and mother-in-
law and it was her matrimonial home before the dispute began, it is her shared
household and she has a right to reside therein. Regarding the revision petition
filed by the husband against the maintenance order in favour of the child, the
court held that since it is only an interim arrangement to prevent destitution of
the child, it could not be considered at par with an order affecting the rights of
the parties. In spite of Batras judgment this judgment interpreted the
provisions with an open mind and has considered the plight of the aggrieved
woman.
In P. Babu Venkatesh v. Rani62, the wife had been beaten and was
disposed of her matrimonial home at midnight. She sought for urgent relief of
residence order against her husband and in-laws. The trial court passed ad-
60
Criminal Revision Petition Nos. 132 and 133/2009.
C.R. R. No. 10 of 2009.
62
2009(2) RCR(Civil) 883
interim reliefs in her favour permitting her to re-enter the matrimonial home.
She was permitted to break open the locks and enter the premises as her in-
laws had locked the house. The husband contended that the house was in the
name of his father and relied on the Batra case. The wifes contention was that
he had alienated the house to his father during the pendency of the case. The
court took notice of the fact that if every husband started transferring his
property in favour of someone else when a matrimonial dispute arises and
plead that premises does not belong to him and is therefore not a shared
household the women will be deprived of their right to residence. The court
while upholding the order of the trial court to break open the locks observed
that the wife cannot be made to wait in the street and that husbands would
prevent the wives from reaping the benefits of the order by simply locking the
premises and walking away.
The Delhi High Court in Master Ryan through its mother Mrs. Ridhima
63
Juneja v. P. N. Juneja and Sons , restricted the scope of an interim order for
notdisturbing peaceful possession passed in favour of the wife to mean
constructive possession only. The facts of this case are that after marriage and
the birth of their son, the parties had been residing together in the self-owned
property of the in-laws. The husband was employed by the Hindu Undivided
Family .As a result of alleged cruelty, the wife was forced to leave the shared
household along with her son following which she filed an application under
the Act seeking reliefs of residence and compensation among others. While
compensation was granted, the trial court refused to grant residence order for
restoring her to the shared household, based on the judgment in Batra v. Batra.
63
163 (2009) D.L.T. 14.
In the case of Mrs. Savita Bhanot v. Lt. Col. V.D. Bhanot64where the
property was a government accommodation provided to the husband, the trial
Court ordered certain benefits to the wife. In this case, the husband had
deserted the aggrieved woman, the reliefs that could be claimed according to
the court were a.) Right of residence in the house which was her matrimonial
home before the parties started residing in the government accommodation,
where deemed feasible; b.)Where no such matrimonial home exists, the
husband can be asked to arrange for an alternate accommodation; or c.) The
husband is to provide rent for alternate accommodation.
64
(2010) 158 P.L.R. 1
From the analysis of all these cases as to shared household and right to
residence no foundational philosophy is emerging as to the exact status of right
to residence. The issue of matrimonial property rights is not interpreted
favourably. The economic contribution of a woman to her family or
matrimonial home is least recognized. Instead, landed properties covered by
the documents of title, in her name alone, will be viewed as her property. In
India the notion of marital property is not yet recognized. There is no concept
of common property and the property brought into the marriage is not subject
to equitable distribution during matrimonial dissolution. Instead, even though it
is most often the woman who takes on the bulk of home loans, women are
invariably left empty handed after a divorce.
incorporated65.
The Act clearly states that only women can petition for the remedies
available under this Act, the question of whether women can be named as
respondents is a contentious one. The Act defines respondent as any adult
male person who is, or has been, in a domestic relationship with the aggrieved
In the United States, the Personal Responsibility and Work Opportunity Reconciliation Act
(1996) created a Family Violence Option, which permits survivors of domestic violence to be
exempted from certain employment restrictions related to receiving public assistance payments.
The United States Department of Health and Human Services issued regulations regarding the
implementation of the Family Violence Option in April 1999.
Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act,2005, s.2(q)
67
Ajay Kant v. Alka Sharma2008 Cri.L.J. 264, I (2008) D.M.C. 1, 2007 (4) M.P.H.T. 62
State of Kerala70upheld the same view that a female can be a respondent. In the
first case, the Court categorically held that, the term relative is quite broad
and it includes all relations of the husband irrespective of gender or sex. The
second case, further clarified that, section 2(q) of the Act and its proviso if
read together nowhere suggest that relative of the husband or the male partner
has to be a male. In proviso to section 2(q) of the Act the word is relative and
not male relative a female relative is not excluded from the definition of
respondent This stance was reinforced in a number of rulings in the High
Proof of legal marriage in the rigid sense or required under the civil
law is unnecessary for establishing an offence under Section 498A IP.
The expression marriage or relative can be given a diluted meaning
which a common man or society may attribute to those concepts in
75
common parlance for the purpose of s.498A IPC.
74
Id., para 9.Emphasis added.
75
Id., para 23.
Rights of Women against Domestic Violence-The Law and Emerging
Challenges 319
Judicial Decisions on the Protection of Women from Domestic Violence
Act, 2005 - A Critique
76
(2010) 51 G.L.R. 635.
(2011) 3 S.C.C. 650.
also, but, no restrictive meaning can be given to expression relative nor has
said expression been defined to make it specific to males only.
To begin with, the court noted the purpose and intent of the law.
Reference was also made to the judgment of the Delhi High Court in Aruna
80
Pramod Shah v. UOI in which the court upheld the constitutionality of the
Act and dismissed the contention that the gender-specific nature of the law was
arbitrary. In view of the above, the court sought to segregate the definition of
respondent under section 2(q) into two independent and mutually exclusive
parts: It was held that where the aggrieved party is in a domestic relationship
with the other person, such person has to be an adult male person, as per the
main provision. Using this provision, any woman, irrespective of her marital
status, may seek reliefs under the Act against an adult male person. The
applicability of the proviso, however, is limited in nature as it applied only to
cases where the aggrieved party is married or in a relationship in the nature of
marriage. Only with regard to such a limited and specific class of persons, the
definition of respondent has been widened to include a relative of husband or
male partner. The court reasoned that it is common knowledge that family
members of the husband may also join in treating the wife with cruelty, and
such family members would invariably include women. Further, it was pointed
out that leaving female relatives out of the scope of the Act would mean that
the husband or male relatives would ensure that the violence is perpetrated by
the female relatives thereby frustrating the object of the law. The court also
referred to the provisions of the Act such as sections 19, 21 and 31, from which
a clear inference in this regard can be drawn.
Supra n. 3.
The decisions in the abovementioned case suggest that the courts have
begun to develop a more nuanced understanding of domestic violence,
recognising that women are not only abused in their roles as wives and
daughters-in-law, but can also face domestic abuse as daughters, sisters,
mothers, grandmothers, etc. This is, however, an aspect of the law that has not
as yet been adequately developed or implemented for the diverse
manifestations of violence faced by women within the domestic sphere.
the first hearing81 and that courts must grant interim/ urgent orders82 to help
ensure that women facing violence at least have immediate access to shelter,
food, protection, and some financial resources even when the case is pending in
the court. These fast-track procedures have often been challenged on the basis
that the case has not followed the requisite legal and technical procedures.
In Milan Kumar Singh & Anr. v. State of U.P. & Anr83, the husband
challenged the application filed by his wife under the Act on the ground that
such an application ought not be filed directly before a Magistrate without first
approaching the Protection Officer and recording a Domestic Incident Report
as per the stipulations of the Act . He also argued that the application was not in
the prescribed format as provided in Form II as per the Rules.
The Court dismissed both contentions on the grounds that the provisions
of the Act were not accurately interpreted by the husband. The Court held that
as the Act was a social legislation, its purpose was to help the aggrieved person
and not impose strict procedural requirements. The Court held:
A plain reading of section 12(1) shows that the aggrieved person can
file complaint directly to the Magistrate concerned. This is the choice
of the aggrieved person that instead of directly approaching the
Magistrate, he or she can approach the Protection Officer and, in case
of emergency, the service provider and with their help to the
Magistrate concerned.. There is no illegality in directly approaching
the Magistrate for taking cognizance in the matter. This is for the
Magistrate concerned to take help of Protection Officer and service
provider after receiving the complaint provided, if he feels it necessary
84
for final disposal of the dispute between the parties .
81
Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act,2005, s. 12(5).
82
Id., s. 23.
83
2007 Cri. L.J. 4742, per R.N.Mishra,J.
84
Id.,para 7.
The Court further clarified that the Domestic Incident Report therefore,
is to be recorded only if the Magistrate or the parties require the assistance of
the Protection Officer. An affidavit properly verified attached to the complaint
is sufficient enough and the complaint cannot be dismissed solely for the
reason of non- attachment of verification note. In its clarification of the proviso
to section 12(1), the Court had set a precedent by reiterating that, in view of the
purpose of the legislation, procedural rules must not be allowed to defeat
substantive rights.
This judgment reiterates the fact that, in light of the objective and spirit
of the Act, procedural technicalities must not be allowed to act as barriers to a
womans access to justice. In fact, the significance of the judgment lies in the
fact that before reaching its conclusion and interpreting the procedural
provisions of the Act, the Court examined the intention of the legislature and
observed that, as a social legislation, the Act cannot be fettered by the
technicalities of procedure and path at the cost of justice, safety and security of
the aggrieved woman. The Court held that the purpose of service of notice is to
put the respondent on notice and to ensure compliance with the rules of natural
justice, which had been fulfilled by the lower court.
Interim orders are routinely challenged on the grounds that a woman has
not filed a separate application for interim reliefs. For example, in the cases of
87
Crl. MC No. 53/2007.
88
,Crl. W.P. No. 1552/2008, 20/08/2008, Bom.
Under the Act, a Protection Officer (PO) is appointed by the state government to help an
aggrieved woman register her complaint and seek protection. The first step in these
proceedings is for the PO to write out a Domestic Incident Report, detailing the instances of
domestic violence. The PO also assists Magistrates to implement many of the Acts provisions
and to ensure the orders passed by the Courts are properly implemented.
90
E.g., decisions in Ajay Kant v. Alka Sharma, 2008 Cri. L.J. 264 and M.Palani v.
Meenakshi,A.I.R 2008 Mad.162
Cr. Ap.No. 2970/2008, 5/8/2009, Bom.
proceedings, cases that go into appeal are often dragged out for even longer.
Finally, even though many courts have ruled that complaints do not necessarily
have to subscribe to a given format and that a Protection Officers report is not
necessary while granting interim reliefs, inconsistent practices are followed in
different courts.
Although there have been a number of cases in India, where the
petitioner was later abused and even killed by the respondent after a Protection
Order was passed, the courts have failed to set any landmark precedents in
terms of holding the various functionaries under the Act accountable for
inaction or a failure to provide protection to women. For example, a number of
International Courts have held the state directly responsible for a failure to
provide protection to women facing domestic violence. This was reaffirmed by
the landmark case of Opuz v. Turkey92, where the European Court of Human
Rights held that the Turkish authorities failure to react to the problem of
domestic violence was tantamount to a form of discrimination against women
and ordered the state to pay the victim non-pecuniary damages and called for
the Turkish government to modify its tolerant attitude towards domestic
violence. In the light of an increasing number of women facing continued
violence despite the issuance of Protection Orders, the Indian Courts need to
keep in mind the states national and international legal obligations to protect
women from violence and hold the state accountable in cases where it fails to
protect women from violence.
The Act stipulates that a woman, her minor children, or her major
children suffering from physical or mental abnormalities are entitled to
monetary reliefs in cases of domestic violence. Although The Act specifically
stipulates that the monetary relief granted to a woman should be, adequate,
fair, and consistent with the standard of living to which the aggrieved person is
92
Opuz v. Turkey (European Court of Human Rights, Application no. 33401/02),See Ch.3.
93
Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act,2005, s.20 (2).
legal battles for paltry amounts of maintenance, which arent even adequate to
cover their basic living expenses. This is evidenced in the case of Madhu Bala
94
v. Pritam Kumar Rao , where the aggrieved was shuttled from the Trial Court
to the Sessions Court and finally to the High Court, when her husband
challenged the sum of Rs 3000 that she had been awarded for monthly rent and
maintenance by the Trial Court. Although the High Court finally ruled in favor
of the wife, it halved the sum awarded to her to Rs 1500 per month.
Jaibir95. The High Court of Rajasthan stated that the Magistrate might direct
the respondent to pay monetary relief to meet the expenses incurred and losses
suffered by the aggrieved person and any child of the aggrieved person as a
result of the domestic violence and such relief might include, but was not
limited to the maintenance for the aggrieved person as well as her children.
case of Rajesh Kurre v. Safuraba96and clarified that the provisions of the Act
are independent and are in addition to any other remedy available to the
aggrieved. It was held that competent to award maintenance to the aggrieved
person and child of the aggrieved person in accordance with the provisions of
section 20 of the Act and the aggrieved person was not required to establish his
case in terms of section 125 of the Code. Therefore, it was clarified that a
94
, RLW2009(1)Raj 827.
MANU/PH/1180/2008, 9/9/2008, Pun.
MANU/CG/0119/2008, 11/11/2008, CG.
maintenance claim under the Act does not need to be established in terms of the
Criminal Procedure Code.
97
In Neetu Singh v. Sunil Singh in an appeal before the High Court of
Chhattisgarh, the aggrieved woman challenged the order of a Family Court
dismissing her application filed under section 12 of the Act in a pending
proceeding. The question that arose for determination was whether the family
court was correct in dismissing her application, given the statutory mandate
provided under section 26(1) of the Act whereby, any relief available under
sections 18, 19, 20, 21 and 22 may also be sought in any legal proceeding,
before a civil court, family court or a criminal court, affecting the aggrieved
person and the respondent whether such proceeding was initiated before or
after the commencement of this Act. The Court upheld the right of an
aggrieved person to file an application under the Act in any pending
proceeding, with the caveat that such an application must be filed under
Section 26 of the Act, rather than under Section 12 of the Act as was done in
the instant case.
97
A.I.R 2008 S.C. 360, per L.C. Bhadoo, J.
MANU/DE/8716/2007
99
MANU/TN/9828/2007
continue to remain dispossessed from the shared household; the act of domestic
and economic abuse is still continuing and shall, therefore, attract liability
under the Act. It was affirmed that being a beneficial legislation, technicalities
could not stand in the way of the Court entertaining such applications. Through
this notable decision the Court recognized the reality that domestic violence is
an ongoing, recurrent phenomenon and that, while the cause of action may
have arisen prior to the enforcement of the Act, the abuse is deemed to continue
until the aggrieved person is restored to a position of safety from where she can
enjoy her legal entitlements.
100
II (2009) D.M.C. 787.
with the respondent in the same shared household on the date of its coming into
force and those who have been forced to leave the shared household but were
still in a domestic relationship. Demonstrating sensitivity to the vulnerabilities
faced by women, it was held that not only would denial of the right to claim
under the Act would be a violation of the constitutional guarantee of equality
but would also allow the respondent to take advantage of his own wrong, and
deny such women the benefit t of the provisions of the Act.
101
2010 (112) Bom LR 1398.
This judgment of the Bombay High Court was clearly based on the
particular facts of the case and cannot be taken as laying down a principle of
law or adjudicating upon a specific provision of the Act. However, in so far as
the court based its conclusion on the fact that because there was no
communication or contact between the parties, no proximate act of domestic
violence could be alleged, it must be mentioned that the fact of desertion
continued. As was rightly contended by the aggrieved person desertion itself is
a form of economic abuse under the Act. Hence, irrespective of any
communication or contact, the fact of continued desertion is sufficient to
invoke the provisions of this Act.
102
In Mrs. Savita Bhanot v. Lt. Col Bhanot ,the Delhi High Court
considered whether an application under the Act was maintainable where the
allegation was with regard to domestic violence, including being forced out of
the shared household, which took place before the Act came into force. In the
proceedings filed by the petitioner against her husband before the trial court, it
was alleged that she was forced to leave her shared household in 2005. The
wife sought a residence order to allow her to live in her permanent matrimonial
home since the shared household was a government accommodation. The wife
appealed against the order passed by the Magistrate, which was dismissed on
the ground that the cause of action arose before the Act came into force.
102
(2010) 158 P.L.R 1.
In India without using the expression ex post facto law the underlying
principle has been adopted in the Article 20 (1) of the Indian Constitution in the
following words: "No person shall be convicted of any offence except for
violation of a law in force at the time of the commission of the act charged as
an offence, nor be subjected to a penalty greater than that which have been
inflicted under the law in force at the time of commission of the offence.
Hence it is the settled position that any law that has penal repercussions,
is to be applied prospectively and the departure only be allowed in rarest of the
rare cases, in instances morally repugnant or involving grave moral turpitude.
The right to protection from retroactive criminal law is well recognised
103
throughout the international community . The Court in the instant case has
adopted a retributive approach of punishment and to punish retrospectively. It
reflects how a rule as basic as this, relating to retrospectivity, can be
circumvented in the garb of protection to women, and runs contrary to various
international instruments and Article20(1) of the Constitution of India.
As early as 1651, Hobbes wrote: No law, made after a fact done, can make it a crime ... For before the
law, there is no transgression of the law. This principle was stated in 1789 in Article 1, section 9(3) of the
American Constitution which prohibited ex post facto laws. Article 7 of the European Convention on
Human Rights provides that no one shall be held guilty of a penal offence made so retrospectively. Article
7 includes the important proviso that it: ... shall not prejudice the trial and punishment of any person for
any act or omission which, at the time when it was committed, was criminal according to the general
principles of law recognised by civilized nations.
104
2008 (1)K.L.J. 525.
and a mutual consent divorce were decreed as part of the judgment. Following
these successful negotiations between the parties, the Court held that the
attempt in matrimonial cases must be first to exhaust the option of court-
mediated settlement before beginning legal proceedings.
The Act recognises the right of a woman to be free from all forms of
violence by providing a comprehensive definition of domestic violence, which
includes physical, sexual, verbal, emotional, and economic abuse. Section 3 of
the Act defines domestic violence as any act, omission, or commission that
harms or injures or has the potential to harm or injure a woman or child. In
theory, the law treats verbal, emotional, economic, sexual and physical abuse as
equally serious offences. In reality, an analysis of case law on domestic
violence demonstrates that the courts have rarely taken generally action in
cases of verbal or emotional abuse, unless it is accompanied by some form of
physical abuse.
The following discussions on cases dealt under the Act aims to analyse
judicial pronouncements regarding domestic violence and related womens
rights issues. While many judges have not hesitated to give full effect to the
provisions of the Act, there have been decisions which have conservatively
interpreted what are prima facie liberal provisions. There have been a
significant number of judicial decisions which have challenged existing notions
of patriarchy while looking at the woman question and have delivered
judgments which granted relief to women at a time when there were no
legislations which provided any remedy. Further, the judiciary has often chosen
a policy of non-interference while dealing with cases relating to violence
against women since they perceive such matters to be in the private domain.
Given this background, the best argument along with the Act in place, is that
what is needed is a radical change in the judicial mindset and recognition of the
fact that personal is political.
that domestic violence is undoubtedly a human rights issue, the Act has not yet
succeeded in building a solid foundation.
.. ..
Chapter 8
THE EMERGING ISSUES AND CHALLENGES
After analyzing the pros and cons of the Act and the judicial
interpretations three important questions are posed in this chapter. An attempt
is made to answer these specific questions.
Does the Indian society tolerate the legal intervention into the so called
sacrosanct familial space?
are denied protection under section 375 of IPC 1. Offences relating to the above
crimes are non-cognizable and bailable sending out the message that they are
lighter offences. The problem of marital rape goes much beyond the issue of
domestic violence and the Act does not deal with this. By providing civil
remedies to a woman subject to domestic violence, the Act undermines the
serious nature of the problem of marital rape. The concept of sexual abuse in
the Act perpetrated within the marital ties relates to the concept of bodily
privacy, which is an alien concept to Indian marital culture. A woman hardly
takes a stand against the sexual desire or aggressive characters of her husband.
A sensitization on this issue can lead to criticisms from different quarters as
trying to destroy the marital relationship/unit in India.
1
Sudhanshu Roy and Iti Jain, Criminalizing Marital Rape in India: A Constitutional
Perspective Cri,L.J 83 (2008).
A bare reading of the Act gives the impression that when a woman is
sexually abused against her will, the offence of sexual abuse is committed. To
raise an argument against the husband or to do a job independently against the
wishes of the husband in Indian family are uncomfortable discussions and are
socially construed as offences. To counter argue this criticism one need to have
a strong culture of tolerance and respect for the status of women which is
completely lacking in India. But how far an Indian woman who doesnt want to
sever her marital bond for the sake of her children will come forward with the
complaint of sexual abuse perpetrated by her husband is perplexing. The way
in which the concepts of autonomy and privacy are construed by the west
cannot be made applicable to Indian context. Indian cultural traditions attach an
extremely high value to decisional autonomy for males. As Robin West has
rightly remarked- the marital rape exemption creates, fosters and encourages
not marital intimacy, harmony, or reconciliation, but a separate state of
2
sovereignty ungoverned by law and insulated from state interference . The Act
rightly leaves that space of bodily privacy of the married woman vacant.
8.1.2 The Concept of Right to Residence Versus Status of Matrimonial
Property to Women in India
2
Robin L. West, Equality Theory, Marital Rape, and the Promise of the Fourteenth
Amendment, 42 F.La.Rev. 40,71 (1990).
See for discussions on the topic. Flavia Agnes, Matrimonial Rights and Obligations in
Marriage, Divorce and Matrimonial Litigation , Vol. II Oxford University Press, New Delhi
(2011).
The Indian Penal Code makes bigamy punishable5 and the over-
enthusiasm shown in the legislation to imbibe the concept of relationships in
the nature of marriage seems to be contradictory. The invalidity of marriage
can no longer be used as defence by the man to dispossess or deny maintenance
to the vulnerable women. The argument posed by the promoters of the Act that
the law takes care of the limited remedies of women who have fallen prey to
unscrupulous males by entering into bigamous marriages does not appear to be
reasonable. The western concept of live-in-relationships/civil partnerships are
often equated and understood as the basis of the provision of relationships in
the nature of marriage under the Act. The law can never play the role of
44
Amartya Sens Capability enhancement and approach as to womens economic status
supports this view. Ownership of property by women or promotion of employment
opportunities can reduce her tolerance to violence. Researcher is referring to the discussions in
Bina Agarwal and Pradeep Panda, Toward Freedom from Domestic Violence :The Neglected
Obvious , 8(3) Journal of Human Development 364-378 (2007).
5
Indian Penal Code, s.494
cultural conscience in the Indian context and the same idea is conveyed when
Elizabeth Schneider remarked that:
point7. The debate over the topic pertains to the effect that whether the Act will
open up flood gates of sexual promiscuity or redeem the Hindu marriages
6
Debora Tuerkheimer, Recognising and Remedying the Harm of Battering: A Call to
Criminalize Domestic Violence, 94(4) Journal of Criminal Law and Criminology 3 (2004)
Supra,Ch.7.
Flavia Agnes, Domestic Violence Act-A Portal of Hope, 4(4) Combat Law A Nation on
Dialysis 8 (2005).
9
Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act,2005, ss.9,14.
under the Act thus become inimical to the safest survival of woman in the
family.
It propagates the theory of live and let live and advocates maximizing individual rights and
minimizing the role of the state. The key assumption behind libertarian thought is that formal
institutions such as governments, formal religions and social organizations are not only poor
managers of resources, but are also fundamentally inimical to the autonomy of the individual,
the most fundamental libertarian value. The best-known economic, literary, and philosophical
exponents of American libertarianism are Murray Rothbard, Ayn Rand and Robert Nozick.
11
Utilitarianism propagates the theory that an action is right in so far as it promotes happiness,
and that the greatest happiness of the greatest number should be the guiding principle of
conduct. The most famous exponents of utilitarianism were Jeremy Bentham and J. S. Mill. In
An Introduction to the Principles of Morals and Legislation (1789), Bentham introduced his
"utilitarian" doctrine: mankind has two masters, pleasure and pain; nothing is good except
pleasure, or bad except pain. To advance pleasure is the aim of human nature, and therefore the
goal of every person; by extension, it should be the goal of society as well. But since individual
interests clash within every society, the aim of legislation and government should be to
harmonize these clashing interests for the good of the whole.
12
Harvinder Kaur v. Harmander Singh Choudhary, A.I.R. 1984 Delhi 66.
13
Allen Lane Publishers, Penguin Books. June (2005).
http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/CultureofIndia. Last visited on 12 th June.2012.
Protection of Women From Domestic Violence Rules , 2006,R.13 (2): The following persons shall
not be eligible to be appointed as Counselors in any proceedings, namely:-
any person who in interested or connected with the subject matter of the dispute or is related to
any one of the parties or to those who represent them unless such objection is waived by all the
parties in writing.
any legal practitioner who has appeared for the respondent in the case or any other suit or
proceedings connected therewith.
18
http://www.napsipag.org/PDF/NEENA_JOSEPH.pdf. Last visited on 9th February 2010.
One of the major deficiencies apparent within the legislation is the conflict
of jurisdictions between different courts. The new Act seeks to bring domestic
violence within the ambit of civil law with objectives markedly different from
those of a family court. The purpose and significance of a civil law on domestic
violence, the first of its kind in the country ,lies in its attempted circumvention of
personal law regime. Personal laws most closely regulate womens status and
entitlements within the family and since they are dictated by religious law, they
19
have been extremely resistant to reform .The new law is envisaged as a way to
conceptualize how restraint and restitution can be achieved. The objective of the
Act specifically projects the need for more effective protection to Indian women
from domestic violence. This very objective of the Act differentiates itself from the
predominant concept of the Family Courts Act, 1984 which is meant for the
preservation of the family. Taking cue from the Model legislation as envisaged by
the UN Rapporteur on Violence Against Women, the ideal legislation globally
acceptable to combat the issue of domestic violence projected is the legislation that
combines both criminal and civil remedies. Reflecting the international consensus
about the nature of legal intervention into domestic violence, the Government of
India has also incorporated the new Act on domestic violence that provides for a
blend of civil and criminal remedies. The cases on domestic violence under the Act
are reverted to the Magistrates court thereby overburdening the criminal court
proceedings and in a way it implicitly acknowledges failure of the Family Courts
working.
The reliefs provided under sections 18, 19, 20, 21and 22 of the Act can
also be simultaneously be sought in any pending legal proceedings before a
civil, family or criminal court20 . A High Court judge may be called upon to
adjudicate proceedings for maintenance under the Hindu Maintenance and
Adoption Act. A Family Court is presided over by a District Judge. The only
provision of appeal provided in the statute is under section 29 of the Act which
says that an appeal will lie in the Court of Sessions only with the orders of the
The proposal for a Uniform Civil Code, as advocated in the Indian Constitutions Directive
Principles of State Policy has therefore had to be almost indefinitely deferred.
20
Supra n.6, s.26.
Magistrate. The Act is totally silent as to where an appeal will lie against orders
passed by any other court, under the Hindu Maintenance and Adoption Act or a
District Judge under the Guardian and Wards Act or under the Hindu Marriage
Act wherein such an application is made in a pending case.
should be made cognizable and compoundable 22. This issue went up to the
Supreme Court repeatedly and courts have devised the methods whereby 498A
offences are being compounded. It is extreme injustice if the woman is willing
and wants to go back despite her making a complaint and her-in laws are
21
For instance a case of custody under the Guardianship Act and a similar petition filed before
the magistrate, there is no provision as to which proceedings the litigants is required to adopt,
whether she will proceed with the application under this Act or she has a right to continue in
the earlier proceedings. This Act has a non-obstante clause that says not withstanding any Act
in force, the provision of the Act will take force.
In this context, the observation made by Malimath Committee in the Report on Reforms of Criminal
Justice System, Government of India, Ministry of Home Affairs, 2003 is significant: It reads: For
the Indian women marriage is a sacred bond and she tries her best not to break it. As this offence is
made non-bailable and non- compoundable it makes reconciliation and returning to marital home
impossibleLess tolerant impulsive wife may lodge even on a trivial act. The result is that the
husband and his family may be immediately arrested and there may be a suspension or loss of job
The husband may realize the mistakes committed and come forward for a cordial relationship.
The women may like to seek reconciliation. But this may not be possible due to the legal
obstaclesHeartless provisions that make the offence non- bailable and non compoundable operate
against reconciliation. It is therefore necessary to make this offence bailable and compoundable to
give a chance to the spouses to come together. Emphesis added.
willing to take her back. Women are deprived of a very important statutory
benefit. Rapprochement and compromise which is the need of matter, is not
permitted by this legislation. This very aspect disrupts the restorative justice to
a woman inclined to a matrimonial set up. All these aspects are pertinent in a
patriarchal set up where marriage and family is viewed as inviolable
institutions. Mere enactment is not enough to deal with the issue of domestic
violence but conceptual and procedural clarity and enforceability becomes
crucial for its success.
Protection Officer is the first point of contact for the aggrieved person.
The protection of Women from Domestic Violence, Rules, 2006 provides for
23
The protection of Women from Domestic Violence,Rules,2006, r. 3(1)&(2)
The Act suggests a new role of police as the savior of victim. Yet, the
perceived notion of police as the power to punish clashes with this new role.
Moreover the stakeholders seem to be confused about their duty and obligation
in protecting a victim of domestic violence. This in turn creates hurdles for
the effective implementation of the Act.
This argument by the researcher is based on her own interactions with the Protection officers
Attended and participated in a workshop conducted at Govt. Law College, Kozhikode, Kerala,
on The Protection of Women from Domestic Violence Act, 2005.
country25.
Victims of domestic violence, unlike other victims of crime, share a
special relationship with the perpetrator. For these and other reasons, domestic
violence cases present complex legal, psychological, and sociological
challenges to our communities. Therapeutic jurisprudence and the problem-
solving approach in the U.S.A and U.K strategies envisages and treat victims
and survivors as people (notcases) given the background of complex realities
of their daily lives. Here lies the difficulty in following the western model. This
may mean acknowledging the potential of the legal system to address domestic
violence, while equally acknowledging (from the victims perspective) the
problems which beset its operation in practice. We need to recognize the limits
of criminal justice initiatives as it fail to provide to victims of domestic
violence the protection, safety and justice they need. The law is just one
element of a necessarily wider social response to domestic violence. It must
necessarily include community-based and preventative strategies.
The critics of this view advocate that respect for a largely imagined and idealized version of the
Indian family system is likely to hamper the feminist initiatives in the Indian context.
See Ch. 4 of the thesis for more discussion on specialized domestic violence courts.
The Act plays the role of moral policing. State acts as omnipotent savior
bringing in canned solutions to the victims of domestic violence. The situation
reflects the tragedy that abused is pitted against the state driven legal
mechanism. The victim feels emotionally displaced from her cultural and social
settings and is deprived of her linkage to herself. The legal option to punish an
offender for repeating domestic violence following protection order is limited
because victims mostly abandon their matrimonial home before filing a case as
it happens so in the Indian matrimonial set up. Persuading the victim to reach a
compromise and start conjugal relation even though her husband did not
comply with the protection order fully appears to be contradictory with the
restorative reliefs envisaged by the Act. This vindicates the position that the
Act attempts to settle domestic violence within the existing familial structure
and may not help those who lost all hope of reunion. The instances of court
trying to moralise the litigants through the judgment are also not rare in the
T. Vineed v. Manju S. Nair, 2008 (1) K.L.J., 525 para.3. The parties were involved in eleven
litigations against each other before different for a, in view of the worsening relations between
the parties, the court appointed a conciliator to enable the parties to settle the disputes between
them. Upon arriving at a settlement, the court said:In the light of the discussions the court and
the conciliator had between the parties and thanks to the cooperation extended by the learned
counsel appearing on both sides, it is heartening to note that peace could be purchased not only
between the parties to the marriage, but also between the families of both parties. True, they
have agreed to disagree. But we could convince them that on disagreement also, the parties to
the marriage can still be friends. For the only reason that the matrimonial bond is terminated
and the marriage is dissolved, the parties to the marriage need not be strangers and enemies;
they can still continue to be friends, and they have to continue as good friends in this case for
the additional reason that they have a child. In cases of domestic violence in grave forms,
prioritizing conciliation could have the effect of compromising the safety, security and dignity
of the aggrieved woman and forcing her back into the violent home. The good intention of the
court in this judgment was to prevent further hostilities between the parties, avoiding
multiplicity of litigations and arriving at an amicable settlement of all pending issues between
the parties. It appears to be a good ideal. While this is desirable, conciliation may not be the
violence is a major hurdle for resolving any dispute 28. In the absence of NGOs
providing the needed support to the victims, the role of neighbors and other
secondary groups becomes pertinent. This forces the victims, in the Indian
scenario to leave matrimonial home and take shelter in parental home. In the
Indian condition, if a victim fails to garner such support in view of the poor
economic conditions of the parents or other relatives, she is left to the mercy of
the abusive husband to continue a painful life. It is in this context that the Act
has failed to rescue the victims by implementing court orders or providing
quick justice to the victim. Lack of civil society actions should also be seen in
the wider context of prevailing social structure in India.
Filing of false cases out of vested interests thereby belittling the status
of the legislation is another menace to the effective implementation of law in
the country. No proper screening methods to filter out vexatious claims are
envisaged under the Act to make the system fool proof. The Act is found to
target male relatives even though the offender is female. Yet, they are a
testimony to the fact that provisions of the Act may be potent weapon in the
hands of unscrupulous female partners/members of the family.
viable and standard practice in all cases under the Act. To advice a man to be friendly towards
the ex-partner and be friends appear awkward in a situation of domestic violence where a
victim has suffered a torturous life.
28
Likewise the judicial officers with whom I had the opportunity to talk and elicit opinion on
the issue, contended that the law as such is a draconian law disintegrating family relationships
and domestic violence can be categorised as the usual wear and tear of marital life. Very few
academicians suggested the significance of the Act in acknowledging a familial issue. From a
feminist perspective, the suggestions the reflected a pro-western type of criminal
approach/strategy to be resorted in the issue.
Articulating the language of rights for women (and children and the
elderly i.e., the dependents) within the home and thereby seeking to alter the
power relations of the patriarchal house-hold through the mantra of
Conclusion
The questions raised in the first part of this chapter stands analysed in
the context of the Acts new emerging issues and challenges. Although this
issue has been deliberated for long whether law should succeed a change or
should prove to be as one of its principal cause, the latter seems to have a
beneficial and concerned approach to the issue. Consciousness of rights should
per se be asserted first in a socio-political construct, much before a law or a
policy comes into existence so that the concerned law or policy proves to be
meaningful in the associated context. As to the practical value and the wider
educational function of legislation, Jawaharlal Nehru has rightly said:
29
Rajeswari Sunder Rajan, Rethinking Law and Violence: the Domestic Violence (Prevention)
Bill in India, 16 (3) Gender and History 35 (2002), Blackwell Publishing Ltd.USA, (2004),
p.785
A threat of arrest ,a form of surveillance
self that is based on the integration of the individual with the family group.
These constructs need to be modified to take into account the multiple,
complex and hierarchically ordered boundaries, the centrality of the
intergenerational dyad and the lifelong independence between generations.
Without modification, the use of these constructs as per the Act in the treatment
of problem of domestic violence within familial space may cause disintegration
or dysfunctional result in the family relationships and thereby strain the social
fabric ties. In such a context, to draw experiences from the West and emulate
them in the Indian cultural set up appears to be incongruous.
The whole of the Act is structured for the purpose of effective protection
to women from violence within familial relationships. The patriarchal family is
much more demanding on human nature. It requires chastity and self-sacrifice
on the part of the wife and obedience and discipline on the part of the children,
while even the father himself has to assume a heavy burden of responsibility
and submit his personal feelings to the interests of the family tradition. But for
these very reasons the patriarchal family is a much more efficient organ of
cultural life. It is no longer limited to its primary sexual and reproductive
functions. It becomes the dynamic principle of society and the source of social
What remains outside the ambit of law is the sensitivity over handling the
issue and the subjectivities of suffering of the victim. Law in its attempt to correct
something immoral or something wrong intends to end disorder within the familial
space. Legal system tries to assert its presence like any other institutionalized
hierarchical structure, emerging as a moral guardian, rather than a neutral arbiter.
Creative approaches are needed in order to move a private matter into the sphere
of public concern and to translate that public concern into a widespread social
consensus for action. A one size fits all approach is dangerous and self- destructive
in emulating western models. The Act demonstrates a half- baked solution without
any understanding of the cultural fabric of the Indian society. Peoples conceptions
of moral rights and wrongs is shaped not by the present law, but by their
32
assumption about what one is socially and (may be morally) entitled to do .Based
on the above discussions the questions raised in the first portion stands answered
in the negative.
How can we make people respect the rights of others not simply out of fear
of being locked up in jail but because they do not feel good hurting the
interests of others?
How do we make laws that are taken seriously by the people and have the
capacity to protect the legitimate rights and claims of women?
.. ..
Chapter 9
CONCLUSIONS AND SUGGESTIONS
The pre-2005 legal scenario in India was inadequate to deal with the
issue. Emphasis on culture specific dowry deaths and matrimonial cruelty, non-
coverage of relations other than matrimonial relations within the household by
laws, ineffectiveness of civil injunction orders etc., were marred the situation.
The year 2005 witnessed the emergence of a new legislation that boldly
stepped into the private familial domain. The Act widened the horizons of
concept domestic violence to encompass all form s of abuse that remained
dormant throughout the history like, physical, emotional, verbal, and economic
abuse, shared household concept, relationships in the nature of marriage etc.
The remedies were also made exhaustive by the Act.
The judicial decisions that came up mainly related to the issues like
challenging the constitutionality of the new Act, interpretation of relationship
in the nature of marriage, shared household concept, right to residence in the
matrimonial home etc. All the cases that came up were decided by the courts
based on their specific facts and circumstance in each case. The decisions
rendered in Batra case and Veluswamy case are the major decisions that
invoked criticism against the culture specific aspects of the Indian setting.
Courts have not delved deep into the conceptual disarray emerged out of the
Act in the course of its implementation. The decisions, thus lacked the
conceptual clarity of real life experiences of Indian woman. This in turn
resulted in dilution of legal protection.
Hence the new issues that emerged in the familial domain raised big
challenges to the existing foundation of the family cohesiveness in India. The
concepts like sexual abuse, relationships in the nature of marriage, right to
residence in matrimonial home for a woman are contentious issues to be
decided with clarity in the specific Indian cultural scenario. It clashes with the
established cultural ethos and ideology of India. There is a wide gap between
the black letters of law and the existing real life experiences of an average
Indian woman. To detail out the total effect of transition of impact of law in
ordering peace within families is that from a policy of non-intervention into
Though the Act has clearly sent out the message that domestic violence
against women within familial space is a socially unacceptable behavior, the
Act fails in its attempt by bringing in the one size fits all approach of the law
in India and by bringing in the canned solutions of remedies provided under the
Act. The outcome is disintegration of familial ties and relationships. The Act
adopts a total alien ideology of rights based culture and language within the
The relational world view finds its roots in tribal cultures. It denotes a collectivity of factors to
be studied and balanced to reach a solution. A Healthy balancing of context, mind ,body and
spirit leads to health. Here it is working with traditional models of helping and healing.In
contrast to this view the linear worldview finds its roots in Western European and American
thought .It tries to find out the cause effect relationship between events. Interventions are
targeted at the cause and it is a narrower view. It treats the individual. See
http://www.nicwa.org/relationalworldview. Last visited on 12 th February 2013
The findings of thesis that answer the hypothesis formulated in the first
chapter are as follows:
badly affected.
9.2 Suggestions
The approach envisaged under the Act is to vest the entire burden of the
problem on men and his relatives. An anti-discriminating and protectively
discriminating legislation favourable to women cannot be conceived in a
vacuum in the Indian familial cultural setting. The remedies offered is more
dangerous than the disease itself in the Indian cultural scenario. A need based
approach (need of the woman to end violence without ending relationships;)
rather than rights based approach (right of a woman as an individual) is suitable
in this context. Woman in the Indian context is to be viewed along with the
familial framework. The role she plays the status she occupies and the need of
a human being for belongingness are all pertinent when viewed through the
lens of socio cultural ideologies .Finding a solution within the familial structure
rather than disintegrating the familial relations can take forward the cause of
ending domestic violence against women. In short there should be an attempt to
merge and apply the relational world view into the domestic violence
Ibid.
Support from the elder generations adds to the balancing concept. The family
structure and roles, the kinship systems etc., reflects as to how one relates to
others, sustain each other and how one act in a system. There is a natural
tendency within the system to seek harmony. Services need not be targeted to a
specific set of symptoms but rather targeted towards restoration of balance.
This type of restoration of balance within a unique system is not envisaged in
the legislation. Aggravation of individualistic tendencies within families leads
to counter-productive results.
Tocqueville believed that family stability and loyalty were among the
permanent needs of mankind that make social responsibility possible.
According to him family stability produces social responsibility and order
3
whereas family instability fosters social misbehavior . This ideology reflects a
commitment of State to promote virtue over vice ie., to promote good quality
of life in conformity with Aristotelian thoughts. Abraham Maslows hierarchy
4
of needs justifies the need for satisfaction of physiological needs, safety and
need for belongingness(deficiency needs) to be satisfied in the first instance
before aspiring for self-esteem and self- actualization(upper needs) of an
5
individual driven by rights based approaches .
Victims of domestic violence face the challenges that keep them struck
in the safety needs of the stages of human development. The need of the hour is
to work with her to develop her capacity to decide her own future. Victims of
domestic violence are considered to be experts in their own lives and are
supported to make informed choices about how they would prefer to be. This
part of making informed choices over ones own survival is considered to be a
J Sean E. Brotherson and Jeffrey B. Teichert, Value of Law in Shaping Social Perspectives
on Marriage,3 J.L. & Fam. Stud. 28 (2001).
4
In social psychology, the need to belong is an intrinsic motivation to affiliate with others and
be socially accepted.
Nayef R.F Al-Rodhan, Emotional amoral Egoism-A Neuro-philosophical Theory of Human
Nature and its Universal Security Implications, Transaction Publishers, Rutgers
University,U.K. (2008). p.52; See A. Maslow, Motivation and Personality,Harper &Row
(1970).p.18. See http://psychology.about.com/od/theories of personality/ss/maslows-needs-
heirarchy.htm.Last visited on 12th February 2012.
part of feminist counselling in the western practices. The human urge for
belongingness and cultural compulsions of group living rather than
individualistic style of living is to emphasised in the Indian context. . The need
for preservation of indigenous culture and family is reflected in the views of
Malinowski when he says that family is the universal human institution to be
preserved. Malinowskis views on collectivity of familial relationships, the
need for a shared physical space and the love that comes out of such relations
6
cannot be deprived by the eventuality of domestic violence within the family .
Adhering to tribal philosophy of collectivity, family partnerships/ mentoring
programmes are the suggestions proposed in this context.
6
http://malinowskisviews.about.family/od/theories/malinowski-preservation of family.htm.
Last visited on 12 th February 2013
implemented rigorously, when they are mandated in law and developed in close
7
collaboration with non-governmental organizations .
A need for para legal training course for law students and lawyers
including clinical education as to sensitization on the traumatic stages of
victims of domestic violence is the need of the hour 8. Understanding and
addressing the subjectivities of the victim in her own space, giving her time to
assess the meaning of experience of violence and leading her to self- guided
resolutions can uphold and justify the theory of womens best interests which is
very much akin to the childs theory of best interest. Clinical supervisions,
working with psychologists, need for psychological counseling etc. helps her to
decide between multitudes of conflicting loyalties in her own life. To reach out
to the victim is the crux of the programme envisaged here. This programme is
much adaptable to the Indian context where women victims are interested in
stopping violence without severing relationships.
S.42of the Philippine Anti-Violence against Women and their Children Act, 2004 requires all
agencies responding to violence against women and their children to undergo education and
training on (a) the nature and causes of violence against women and their children; (b) legal
rights and remedies of complainants/survivors; (c) services available;(d) legal duties of police
officers to make arrests and offer protection and assistance; and (e) techniques for handling
incidents of violence against women and their children.
The main emphasis of affective lawyering by Professor. Linda G. Mills is significant in this
context. The work of the team is mainly oriented towards the cause of domestic violence
against women. They are involved in a process of empowerment of women in such crisis
situation by empowering them which reflects a need based strategy their strategy is to cure the
whole system than concentrate on the abuser alone. The family of both the abused and abuser is
targeted in the process. For details, see Linda G. Mills, On the Other Side of Silence:
Affective Lawyering For Intimate Abuse in Michael D. Freeman (Ed.), Family, State and
Law- Part VII Disputing Violence ,Vol II, Ashgate/Dartmouth (1999), pp. 539-619.
humanitarian face within the families. Eleanor Roosevelt has aptly observed9 :
Where, after all, do universal human rights begin? In small places,
close to home--so close and so small that they cannot be seen on
any maps of the world. Yet they are the world of the individual
person; the neighbourhood he lives in; the school or college he
attends; the factory, farm or office where he works. Such are the
places where every man, woman, and child seeks equal justice,
equal opportunities, equal dignity without discrimination. Unless
these rights have meaning there, they have little meaning
anywhere. Without concerned citizen action to uphold them close
to home, we shall look in vain for progress in the larger world.
The crux of the quote by Eleanor Roosevelt is the necessity for local
origins of lofty global ideals i.e., the attitudinal change cannot come abruptly.
The human rights culture is to begin from the home itself.
.. ..
9
In Our Hands, a 1958 speech delivered on the tenth anniversary of the Universal
Declaration of Human Rights, as cited in OHCHR (2003), p.4
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Books
Frederick Engels, The Origin of Family, Private Property and the State (1884).
Hatzidimitriadou Matczak, A., and J. Lindsay, (Eds.), Review of Domestic
Violence policies in England and Wales, Kingston University and St
George, University of London, London (2011).
Hilaire Barnett (Ed.), Introduction to Feminist Jurisprudence, Cavendish
publishing Ltd., London (1998).
Holborn, Sociology Themes and Perspectives, Harper Collins Publishers
Limited, London (2000).
Janaki Nair, Women and Law in Colonial India: A Social History, Published in
collaboration with National Law School of India University, Banglore,
Kali for Women, New Delhi (1996).
Janice Richardson, Selves, Persons and Individuals: Philosophical Perspectives
on Women and Legal Obligations, Ashgate Publishing Co. (2004).
K. Uma Devi, Womens Equality in India: A Myth or Reality? Discovery
Publishing House, New Delhi (2000).
K.D.Gour Empowerment of Women in India, Law Publishers India Private
Limited, Allahabad (2005).
L. Waldorf, C. Arab, and M. Guruswamy, CEDAW and the Human Rights-
Based Approach to Programming, United Nations Development Fund for
Women (2007).
Madhu Purnima Kishwar, Zealous Reformers, Deadly Laws, Battling
Stereotypes, Sage Publications India (Pvt.) Ltd., New Delhi (2008).
Mamta Rao, Law Relating to Women and Children, Eastern Book Company
Lucknow (2005).
Rights of Women against Domestic Violence-The Law and Emerging
Challenges 376
Bibliography
Delhi (2002).
Richard Collier, Masculinity, Law and the Family, Routledge, London and
New York (1995).
S.R.Shastri, Women in the Vedic Age, BharatiyaVidyaBhavan, Bombay (1954).
Saroj Iyer, The Struggle to be Human :Womens Human Rights, Books for
Change, Bangalore.(1999).
Shimon Scetreet (Ed.), Women in Law, Hebrew University of Jerusalem
Kluwer Law International. (1998).
Shirin Kudchedkar and Sabiha Al-Issa, (Eds.), Violence Against Women:
Women Against Violence, Pencraft International, Delhi (1998).
Sudhir Kakkar , Intimate Relation: Exploring Indian Sexuality, Penguin Books,
NewDelhi (1989).
Suranjita Ray, Understanding Patriarchy, BA Programme II; Foundation Course,
Human Rights, Gender & Environment, University of Delhi (2009).
Articles
Scream Silently or Neighbours Will Hear. The Crying Need for a Law
against Domestic Violence, 6(4) The Lawyers Collective 5 (1991)
Amita Sahaya, Religion and the Patriarchal Lens, 13(3) Womens Link (2007)
Amy Musgrove and Nicola Groves, The Domestic Violence, Crime and
Victims Act 2004:Relevant or Removed Legislation? 29(3) Journal of
Social Welfare and Family Law 233 (2007).
Caroline Bettinger, Lopez, Jessica Gonzales V. United States: An Emerging
Model for Domestic Violence &Human Rights Advocacy in the United
States, 21 Harvard Human Rights Journal 183 (2008)
Cheryl Thomas, Women in International Human Rights Law in D. Askin,
Dorean M. Koenig (Eds.), Women and International Human Rights Law,
Transnational Publishers, Inc, Ardsley, New York (1999).
Diane Mitsch Bush, Womens Movements and State Policy Reform Aimed at
Domestic Violence Against Women: A Comparison of the Consequences
Office of Violence against Women, The Fact Sheets About the Office on
Violence against Women Focus Areas (1986).
Preliminary Report of the Special Rapporteur on Violence against Women to
the Commission on Human Rights E/CN.4/1995/42 (1994).
Report of Ministry of Women and Child Development, 2001, National Policy
for the Empowerment of Women, WCD, New Delhi: Government of India.
Report of the World Conference of the United Nations Decade for Women;
Equality, Development and Peace, Copenhagen, July (1980)
Report of United Nations Commission on the Status of Women (CSW) and the
Economic and Social Council (ECOSOC).
Reports of The Special Rapporteur on Violence against Women, its Causes and
Consequences 1994-2009
World Health Organization, World Report on Violence and Health, Geneva
(2002)
International Conventions and Declarations
African Charter on Human and Peoples Rights, 1981
American Convention on Human Rights, 1969
ARAB Charter on Human Rights, 2004
Beijing Declaration And Platform For Action, adopted at the Fourth World
Conference on Women: Action for Equality, Development and Peace, 1995
CEDAW Optional Protocol, 2000
Convention against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment
or Punishment, 1984
Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination Against Women
(CEDAW), 1979
Convention on the Rights of the Child, 1989
Declaration on the Elimination of Violence against Women, 1993
European Convention of Human Rights, 1953 European Union
Charter of Fundamental Rights, 2000
.. ..
TABLE OF CASES
A v. The United Kingdom, App NO100/1997/884/1096)1998
27 EHRR 611 ............................................................................................. 65
Abha Arora v. Angela Sharma 1 (2008) D.M.C. 507 Del ......................... 306
A.Dinohamy v.W.L. Blahamy A.I.R.1927 PC 185 .................................... 288
Ahmedabad Municipal Corporation v. Nawab Khan GulabKhan,
1997(11) S.C.C.121: A.I.R.1997 S.C. 152 .................................................. 216
AIR v. Nergesh Mirza, A.I.R. 1987 S.C. 1829 ........................................... 157
Airey v. Ireland, (European Court of Human Rights, Application
no. 6289/73) ............................................................................................... 100
Ajay Kant v. Alka Sharma. 2008 Cri.L. J 264, I (2008) D.M.C 1,
2007 (4) MPHT 62 ............................................................................................. 316
Amar Kumar Mahadevan v. Karthiyayani
MANU/TN/9632/2007 ............................................................................... 325
Amisha Bhandari v. State of Haryana, 2005(2) R.C.R. (Criminal
429(P&H) .................................................................................................... 195
Ammini E.J v. Union of India, A.I.R. 1995 Ker. 252,268 .......................... 157
Appasaheb v. State of Maharashtra,(2007) 9S.C.C. 721 ............................ 189
Aruna Pramod Shah v. Union of India WP. Cr. 425/2008, Del ....... 283,286,322
Ashok Kumar v. State of Punjab,1987, Cri.L.J 412 ................................... 191
Azimuddin v. State of Uttar Pradesh, MANU/UP/0238/2008 ................ 293,222
B. P. Achala Anand v. Appi Reddy, A.I.R. 2005 SC 986 ......................... 299
B.S. Lokhande v. State of Maharashtra, (1965) 2 S.C.R. 837 .................... 181
Badri Prasad v. Dy. Director of Consolidation, A.I.R. 1978 S.C.
1557.............................................................................................................
288
Balkrishna Ramachandra Kadam v. Sangeeta Balkrishna
Kadam, (1997) 7 S.C.C. 500 ....................................................................... 179
1504.............................................................................................................
188
Bapu Subhdeo v. State of Maharashtra, (1992) 2 Bom C.R. 450 ............... 191
Beena Agarwal v. Anupam, A.I.R. 2004 S.C.141 ................................ 189,200
Benumadhob Padhi Mohapatra v. State, 2004 Cri.LJ.505 Ori .................... 193
Bhagirath Kanoria v. State of Madhya Pradesh (1984) 2 S.C.C.
222 ..............................................................................................................
264
Bhagwan Das v. State of Haryana, A.I.R. 1987 S.C. 2049 ........................ 160
Bhagwant v. Bhagwant, A.I.R. 1967 Bom. 90 ........................................... 168
Bharati Naik v.Ramnath Halarnkar,Cri.W.PnO.S
18/09,64/09,Goa ......................................................................................... 308
Birch v. Birch,1873)28 L.T.R.540 ............................................................ 166
Bodhisattwa Gautam v. Subhra Chakraborty, (1996) 1 SC.C.
490 ..........................................................................................................
159,184
Bradley v. State, 1 Miss. 156 (1824) (U.S. Commission on Civil
Rights, 1982 ................................................................................................
116
Britt v. Britt, (1953) 3 All E.R. 769 .......................................................... 166
B.R. Mehta v. Atma Devi, (1984)45 S.C.C. 183 ........................................ 302
C.B. Muthamma v. Union of India, A.I.R. 1979 S.C. 1868 ........................ 157
C.M. Mudaliyar v. Idol of Sri S. Swaminathaswami Thirukoil,
(1996) 8 S.C.C. 525 .................................................................................... 160
Chameli Singh v. State of U.P, A.I.R.1996 S.C.1051........................ 216
Chetan Dass v.Kamla Devi (2001) 4 S.C.C.250 .................................... 170
Chitraganthan v. Seema, I (2008) D.M.C. 365 .......................................... 222
Church v. Church, 1983 N.L.J. 317 ............................................................ 162
Cracknell v. State of U.P, A.I.R. 1953, All. 746. ........................................ 158
D Veluswamy v. D. Patchaiammal,(2010)10 S.C.C. 469 ...................... 294,297
Dastane v. Dastane, A.I.R. 1975 S.C. 1534 ........................................... 167,176
Dattatraya Motiram v. State of Bombay, A.I.R. 1953 Bom.842 ................ 158
S.C. .............................................................................................................
195
Rameshchand Daga v. Rameshwari Daga, (2005) 4 S.C.C. 772 ................ 179
Randhir Singh v. Union of India, A.I.R. 1982 S.C. 877 ............................. 160
Ranganath Parmeshwar Panditrao v. Eknath Gajanan Kulkarni,
....................................................................................
1996 (7) S.C.C. 681 288
Rashmi Kumar v. Mahesh Kumar Bhada, (1997) 2 S.C.C. 397,
1996.............................................................................................................
178
Razzak Khan v. Shahnaz Khan, 2008 (4) M.P.H.T. 413 ............................ 309
Revathi v. Union of India, AIR 1988 S.C. 835 ........................................... 182
Rosy Jacob v. Jacob a. Chandranakkal, A.I.R. 973 S.C. 2090
Russel v. Russel, L.R (1897) A.C.395 ........................................................ 166
S. Khushboo v. Kanniammal and Anr., MANU/SC/0310/2010 ................. 298
S. Meenavathu v. SenthamaraiSelvi, MANU/TN/2547/2009
S. v. Bayoli and Ors, (CCT29/99) [1999] ZACC 19; 2000 (1)
BCLR 86 ; 2000 (2) SA 425 (CC) (3 December 1999 ................................ 108
S.R.Batra v. Smt.TarunBatra,136(2007) D.L.T. 1(SC):1(2007)
D.M.C. 1(SC): ........................................................................................ 300,339
Samar Ghosh v. Jaya Ghosh, 2007 (5) SCALE 1 .................................... 174
Sandhya Manoj Wankhade v. Manoj Bhimrao
Wankhade, (2011) 3 SCC 650 .................................................................... 320
Sarala Mudgal v Union of India, A.I.R 1995 S.C. 1531 ;(
1995)3S.C.C. 635 ................................................................................... 160,181
Sarla Prabhakar Waghmare v. State of Maharashtra, 1990 Cri
L.J. 407 (Bom) ............................................................................................ 193
Saro Ram v. State, (2005) Cri. L.J 457 (A.P) ............................................. 189
Sarvanakumar v. Thenmozhi, MANU/TN/9828/2007 ............................... 331
SavithabenSomabhai Bhatiya v.State of Gujarat,(2005)3
S.C.C.375 ....................................................................................................
296
Shahbad v. Abdullah, A.I.R. 1967, J&K 120 .......................................... 157,168
5. ............................................................................................................ 159,185
State of Punjab v. Gurmit Singh ,(1996) 1 S.C.C.485 ............................... 184
State of Punjab v. Iqbal Singh, A.I..R 1991 SC 1532 ............................. 190,199
State of West Bengal v. Orilal and another, (1994) 1S.C.C. 73 ................. 189
Subbegowda v. Honnamma, A.I.R 1984 Kant. 41 .................................... 164
Sucha Singh v. State of Punjab, A.I.R. 1974P&H 162 .............................. 157
Sukumar Mukherjee v. Tripti Mukherjee, A.I.R. 1992 Pat 32.................... 169
Sulochana v. Kuttappan, (2007) Cri.L.J 2057 ........................................... 252
Suresh Khullar v.Vijay Kumar Khullar A.I.R. 2008 Delhi I ..................... 289
.. ..
APPENDIX
Publications
Declaration
I affirm that the above information is true to the best of my
knowledge.
Anuja S.